Selected quad for the lemma: grace_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
grace_n covenant_n deny_v infant_n 2,377 5 9.5458 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A71177 Symbolon theologikon, or, A collection of polemicall discourses wherein the Church of England, in its worst as well as more flourishing condition, is defended in many material points, against the attempts of the papists on one hand, and the fanaticks on the other : together with some additional pieces addressed to the promotion of practical religion and daily devotion / by Jer. Taylor ... Taylor, Jeremy, 1613-1667. 1674 (1674) Wing T399; ESTC R17669 1,679,274 1,048

There are 32 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

add_v to_o baptism_n be_v of_o use_n either_o to_o man_n or_o child_n unless_o there_o be_v a_o character_n upon_o their_o spirit_n imprint_v when_o or_o before_o they_o come_v to_o the_o use_n of_o reason_n by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n but_o therefore_o as_o the_o anabaptist_n will_v have_v our_o infant_n stay_v from_o the_o sacrament_n till_o they_o can_v understand_v the_o word_n so_o also_o may_v the_o imprint_n of_o a_o character_n on_o the_o flesh_n of_o the_o jewish_a infant_n have_v be_v defer_v till_o the_o word_n shall_v be_v add_v that_o be_v till_o they_o can_v understand_v the_o word_n or_o declaration_n of_o the_o meaning_n of_o that_o character_n without_o which_o they_o can_v not_o understand_v its_o meaning_n the_o case_n be_v equal_a in_o the_o jewish_a infant_n the_o character_n be_v before_o the_o word_n in_o the_o christian_a infant_n the_o word_n be_v before_o the_o character_n but_o neither_o that_o nor_o this_o alone_o can_v do_v all_o the_o work_n of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o yet_o it_o can_v do_v some_o and_o when_o they_o can_v be_v conjoin_v the_o office_n be_v complete_v but_o therefore_o as_o the_o infant_n under_o moses_n may_v have_v that_o which_o to_o they_o be_v a_o insignificant_a character_n so_o may_v the_o infant_n under_o christ_n have_v water_n and_o a_o word_n who_o meaning_n these_o shall_v understand_v as_o soon_o as_o those_o can_v understand_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o character_n so_o that_o these_o pretend_a difference_n signify_v nothing_o and_o if_o they_o do_v yet_o they_o be_v not_o certain_o true_a but_o rather_o certain_o false_a for_o although_o the_o scripture_n mention_v not_o any_o form_n of_o word_n use_v in_o the_o mosaic_a sacrament_n yet_o the_o jew_n book_n record_v they_o and_o then_o for_o the_o other_o that_o there_o be_v no_o character_n imprint_v in_o baptism_n it_o be_v impossible_a they_o shall_v reasonable_o affirm_v because_o it_o be_v spiritual_a be_v also_o undiscernible_a and_o come_v not_o by_o observation_n and_o although_o there_o be_v no_o permanent_a or_o inherent_a quality_n imprint_v by_o the_o spirit_n in_o baptism_n that_o we_o know_v of_o and_o therefore_o will_v not_o affirm_v but_o neither_o can_v they_o know_v it_o be_v not_o and_o therefore_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o deny_v much_o less_o to_o establish_v any_o proposition_n upon_o it_o yet_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o although_o no_o quality_n be_v imprint_v before_o they_o come_v to_o the_o use_n of_o reason_n yet_o a_o relation_n be_v contract_v and_o then_o the_o child_n have_v title_n to_o the_o promise_n and_o be_v reckon_v in_o christi_fw-la censu_fw-la in_o christ_n account_n they_o be_v member_n of_o his_o body_n and_o though_o they_o can_v as_o yet_o do_v no_o duty_n yet_o god_n can_v do_v they_o a_o favour_n although_o they_o can_v yet_o perform_v a_o condition_n yet_o god_n can_v make_v a_o promise_n and_o though_o the_o anabaptist_n will_v be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o restrain_v infant_n yet_o they_o can_v restrain_v god_n and_o therefore_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o to_o be_v deny_v to_o they_o for_o although_o they_o can_v do_v nothing_o yet_o they_o can_v receive_v something_o they_o can_v by_o this_o sacrament_n as_o real_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o covenant_n of_o faith_n even_o before_o they_o have_v the_o grace_n of_o faith_n as_o the_o infant_n of_o the_o jew_n can_v and_o if_o they_o be_v admit_v to_o this_o covenant_n they_o be_v child_n of_o faithful_a abraham_n and_o heir_n of_o the_o promise_n all_o the_o other_o particular_n of_o their_o answer_n to_o the_o argument_n take_v from_o circumcision_n be_v whole_o impertinent_a for_o they_o be_v intend_v to_o prove_v that_o circumcision_n be_v a_o type_n of_o baptism_n can_v prove_v that_o the_o same_o circumstance_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v all_o which_o i_o grant_v for_o circumcision_n be_v no_o type_n of_o baptism_n but_o be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o initiation_n to_o the_o mosaic_a covenant_n and_o so_o be_v baptism_n of_o initiation_n to_o the_o evangelical_n circumcision_n be_v a_o seal_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n and_o so_o be_v baptism_n but_o they_o be_v both_o but_o rite_n and_o sacrament_n and_o therefore_o can_v have_v the_o relation_n of_o type_n and_o antitype_n they_o be_v both_o but_o external_a ministery_n fit_v to_o the_o several_a period_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n with_o this_o only_a difference_n that_o circumcision_n give_v place_n to_o be_v supply_v and_o succeed_v to_o by_o baptism_n and_o as_o those_o person_n who_o can_v not_o be_v circumcise_v i_o mean_v the_o female_n yet_o be_v baptize_v as_o be_v notorious_a in_o the_o jew_n book_n and_o story_n and_o by_o that_o rite_n be_v admit_v to_o the_o same_o promise_n and_o covenant_n as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v circumcise_v so_o much_o more_o when_o male_n and_o female_n be_v only_o baptize_v baptism_n must_v be_v admit_v and_o allow_v to_o consign_v all_o that_o covenant_n of_o faith_n which_o circumcision_n do_v and_o therefore_o to_o be_v dispense_v to_o all_o they_o who_o can_v partake_v of_o that_o covenat_n as_o infant_n do_v then_o and_o therefore_o certain_o may_v now_o so_o that_o in_o short_a we_o do_v not_o infer_v that_o infant_n be_v to_o receive_v this_o sacrament_n because_o they_o receive_v that_o but_o because_o the_o benefit_n and_o secret_a purpose_n of_o both_o be_v the_o same_o in_o some_o main_a regard_n and_o if_o they_o be_v capable_a of_o the_o blessing_n then_o so_o they_o be_v now_o and_o if_o want_v of_o faith_n hinder_v not_o the_o jewish_a babe_n from_o enter_v into_o the_o covenant_n of_o faith_n than_o neither_o shall_v it_o hinder_v the_o christian_a babe_n and_o if_o they_o can_v and_o do_v receive_v the_o benefit_n for_o which_o the_o ceremony_n be_v appoint_v as_o a_o sign_n and_o conduit_n why_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o ceremony_n be_v so_o very_a a_o trifle_n that_o it_o deserve_v not_o to_o become_v the_o entertainment_n of_o a_o fancy_n in_o the_o sober_a time_n of_o the_o day_n but_o must_v go_v into_o the_o portion_n of_o dream_n and_o illusion_n of_o the_o night_n ad_fw-la 4._o and_o as_o ill_a success_n will_v they_o have_v with_o the_o other_o answer_n for_o although_o we_o intend_v the_o next_o argument_n but_o as_o a_o reasonable_a inducement_n of_o the_o baptise_v infant_n by_o way_n of_o proportion_n to_o the_o other_o treatment_n they_o receive_v from_o christ_n yet_o this_o probability_n notwithstanding_o all_o that_o be_v say_v against_o it_o may_v be_v a_o demonstration_n for_o if_o infant_n can_v be_v bring_v to_o christ_n by_o the_o charitable_a minstery_n of_o other_o when_o they_o can_v come_v themselves_o if_o christ_n do_v give_v they_o his_o blessing_n and_o great_a expression_n of_o his_o love_n to_o they_o when_o they_o can_v not_o by_o any_o act_n of_o their_o own_o dispose_n themselves_o to_o it_o if_o the_o disciple_n who_o then_o know_v nothing_o of_o this_o secret_a be_v reprove_v for_o hinder_v they_o to_o be_v bring_v and_o upon_o the_o occasion_n of_o this_o a_o precept_n establish_v for_o ever_o that_o child_n shall_v be_v suffer_v to_o come_v to_o he_o and_o though_o they_o be_v bring_v by_o other_o yet_o it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o they_o have_v come_v themselves_o and_o be_v so_o call_v so_o expound_v and_o if_o the_o reason_n why_o they_o shall_v be_v suffer_v to_o come_v be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o must_v at_o least_o suppose_v they_o capable_a of_o the_o great_a blessing_n there_o be_v no_o peradventure_o but_o this_o will_v amount_v to_o as_o much_o as_o the_o grace_n of_o baptism_n will_v come_v to_o for_o if_o we_o regard_v the_o outward_a ministry_n that_o christ_n do_v take_v they_o in_o his_o arm_n and_o lay_v his_o hand_n upon_o they_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o the_o apostle_n shall_v take_v they_o in_o their_o arm_n and_o lay_v water_n upon_o they_o if_o we_o regard_v the_o effect_n of_o it_o that_o christ_n bless_v they_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o his_o minister_n pray_v over_o they_o if_o we_o regard_v the_o capacity_n of_o infant_n it_o be_v such_o that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n belong_v to_o they_o that_o be_v they_o also_o can_v be_v admit_v to_o the_o covenant_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o that_o be_v the_o least_o signification_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n or_o they_o shall_v be_v partaker_n of_o heaven_n which_o be_v the_o great_a signification_n and_o include_v all_o the_o intermedial_a way_n thither_o according_a to_o the_o capacity_n of_o the_o suscipient_n if_o we_o regard_v the_o acceptance_n of_o the_o action_n and_o entertainment_n of_o the_o person_n it_o be_v as_o great_a as_o christ_n anywhere_o express_v if_o we_o regard_v the_o precept_n it_o can_v be_v suppose_v to_o expire_v in_o the_o person_n of_o
that_o those_o who_o be_v under_o our_o charge_n shall_v know_v the_o force_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o conduct_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o live_v according_a to_o the_o purity_n of_o god_n and_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o this_o let_v we_o cooperate_v with_o all_o wisdom_n and_o earnestness_n and_o knowledge_n and_o spiritual_a understanding_n and_o there_o be_v no_o better_a way_n in_o the_o world_n to_o do_v this_o than_o by_o minister_a to_o person_n single_o in_o the_o conduct_n of_o their_o repentance_n which_o as_o it_o be_v the_o work_n of_o every_o man_n so_o there_o be_v but_o few_o person_n who_o need_v not_o the_o conduct_n of_o a_o spiritual_a guide_n in_o the_o beginning_n and_o progression_n of_o it_o to_o the_o assistance_n of_o this_o work_n i_o have_v now_o put_v my_o symbol_n have_v by_o the_o sad_a experience_n of_o my_o own_o misery_n and_o the_o calamity_n of_o other_o to_o who_o restitution_n i_o have_v be_v call_v to_o minister_v be_v teach_v something_o of_o the_o secret_a of_o soul_n and_o i_o have_v reason_n to_o think_v that_o the_o word_n of_o our_o dear_a lord_n to_o s._n peter_n be_v also_o speak_v to_o i_o tu_fw-la autem_fw-la conversus_fw-la confirma_fw-la fratres_fw-la i_o hope_v i_o have_v receive_v many_o of_o the_o mercy_n of_o a_o repent_a sinner_n and_o i_o have_v feel_v the_o turn_n and_o variety_n of_o spiritual_a intercourse_n and_o i_o have_v often_o observe_v the_o advantage_n in_o minister_a to_o other_o and_o be_o most_o confident_a that_o the_o great_a benefit_n of_o our_o office_n may_v with_o best_a effect_n be_v communicate_v to_o soul_n in_o personal_a and_o particular_a ministration_n in_o the_o follow_a book_n i_o have_v give_v advice_n and_o have_v assert_v many_o truth_n in_o order_n to_o all_o this_o i_o have_v endeavour_v to_o break_v in_o piece_n almost_o all_o those_o proposition_n upon_o the_o confidence_n of_o which_o man_n have_v be_v negligent_a of_o severe_a and_o strict_a live_n i_o have_v cancel_v some_o false_a ground_n upon_o which_o many_o answer_n in_o moral_a theology_n use_v to_o be_v make_v to_o inquiry_n in_o case_n of_o conscience_n i_o have_v according_a to_o my_o weak_a ability_n describe_v all_o the_o necessity_n and_o great_a inducement_n of_o a_o holy_a life_n and_o have_v endeavour_v to_o do_v it_o so_o plain_o that_o it_o may_v be_v useful_a to_o every_o man_n and_o so_o inoffensive_o that_o it_o may_v hurt_v no_o man_n i_o know_v but_o one_o objection_n which_o i_o be_o likely_a to_o meet_v withal_o except_v those_o of_o my_o infirmity_n and_o disability_n which_o i_o can_v answer_v but_o by_o protest_v the_o piety_n of_o my_o purpose_n but_o this_o only_a that_o in_o the_o chapter_n of_o original_a sin_n i_o speak_v otherwise_o than_o be_v speak_v common_o in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n who_o be_v nine_o article_n affirm_v that_o the_o natural_a propensity_n to_o evil_n and_o the_o perpetual_a lust_a of_o the_o flesh_n against_o the_o spirit_n deserve_v the_o anger_n of_o god_n and_o damnation_n against_o which_o i_o so_o earnest_o seem_v to_o dispute_v in_o the_o six_o chapter_n of_o my_o book_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o say_v a_o thing_n in_o its_o own_o nature_n deserve_v damnation_n and_o another_o to_o say_v it_o be_v damnable_a to_o all_o those_o person_n in_o who_o it_o be_v subject_v the_o thing_n itself_o that_o be_v our_o corrupt_a nature_n or_o our_o nature_n of_o corruption_n do_v leave_v we_o in_o the_o state_n of_o separation_n from_o god_n by_o be_v unable_a to_o bear_v we_o to_o heaven_n imperfection_n of_o nature_n can_v never_o carry_v we_o to_o the_o perfection_n of_o glory_n and_o this_o i_o conceive_v to_o be_v all_o that_o our_o church_n intend_v for_o that_o in_o the_o state_n of_o nature_n we_o can_v only_o fall_v short_a of_o heaven_n and_o be_v condemn_v to_o a_o poena_fw-la damni_fw-la be_v the_o severe_a thing_n that_o any_o sober_a person_n own_v and_o this_o i_o say_v that_o nature_n alone_o can_v bring_v we_o to_o god_n without_o the_o regeneration_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n we_o can_v never_o go_v to_o heaven_n but_o because_o this_o nature_n be_v not_o spoil_v by_o infant_n but_o by_o person_n of_o reason_n and_o we_o be_v all_o admit_v to_o a_o new_a covenant_n of_o mercy_n and_o grace_n make_v with_o adam_n present_o after_o his_o fall_n that_o be_v even_o before_o we_o be_v bear_v as_o much_o as_o we_o be_v to_o a_o participation_n of_o sin_n before_o we_o be_v bear_v no_o man_n can_v perish_v actual_o for_o that_o because_o he_o be_v reconcile_v by_o this_o he_o that_o say_v every_o sin_n be_v damnable_a and_o deserve_v the_o anger_n of_o god_n say_v true_a but_o yet_o some_o person_n that_o sin_n of_o mere_a infirmity_n be_v account_v by_o god_n in_o the_o rank_n of_o innocent_a person_n so_o it_o be_v in_o this_o article_n concupiscence_n remain_v in_o the_o regenerate_a and_o yet_o concupiscence_n have_v the_o nature_n of_o sin_n but_o it_o bring_v not_o condemnation_n these_o word_n explain_v the_o 〈◊〉_d original_a imperfection_n be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o be_v even_o in_o the_o regenerate_a and_o it_o be_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o sin_n that_o be_v it_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o one_o sin_n and_o the_o cause_n of_o many_o but_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o da●●ing_v because_o as_o it_o be_v subject_v in_o unconsent_v person_n it_o lose_v its_o own_o natural_a venom_n and_o relation_n to_o guiltiness_n that_o be_v it_o may_v of_o itself_o in_o its_o abstract_a nature_n be_v a_o sin_n and_o deserve_v god_n anger_n viz._n in_o some_o person_n in_o all_o they_o that_o consent_n to_o it_o but_o that_o which_o will_v always_o be_v in_o person_n that_o shall_v never_o be_v damn_v that_o be_v in_o infant_n and_o regenerate_a shall_v 〈◊〉_d damn_v they_o and_o this_o be_v the_o main_a of_o what_o i_o affirm_v and_o since_o the_o church_n of_o england_n intend_v that_o article_n against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o pelagian_n i_o suppose_v i_o shall_v not_o be_v think_v to_o recede_v from_o the_o spirit_n and_o sense_n of_o the_o article_n though_o i_o use_v differ_v manner_n of_o expression_n because_o my_o way_n of_o explicate_v this_o question_n do_v most_o of_o all_o destroy_v the_o pelagian_a heresy_n since_o although_o i_o be_o desirous_a to_o acquit_v the_o dispensation_n of_o god_n and_o his_o justice_n from_o my_o imputation_n or_o suspicion_n of_o wrong_n and_o be_o loath_a to_o put_v our_o sin_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o another_o yet_o i_o impute_v all_o our_o evil_n to_o the_o imperfection_n of_o our_o nature_n and_o the_o malice_n of_o our_o choice_n which_o do_v most_o of_o all_o demonstrate_v not_o only_o the_o necessity_n of_o grace_n but_o also_o of_o infant_n baptism_n and_o then_o to_o accuse_v this_o doctrine_n of_o pelagianism_n or_o any_o new_a name_n of_o heresy_n will_v seem_v like_o impotency_n and_o weakness_n of_o spirit_n but_o there_o will_v be_v nothing_o of_o truth_n or_o learning_n in_o it_o and_o although_o this_o article_n be_v pen_v according_a to_o the_o style_n of_o the_o school_n as_o they_o then_o do_v lo●e_v to_o speak_v yet_o the_o hard_a word_n in_o it_o be_v capable_a of_o such_o a_o sense_n as_o comply_v with_o the_o intendment_n of_o that_o whole_a six_o chapter_n for_o though_o the_o church_n of_o england_n profess_v herself_o fallible_a and_o consequent_o that_o all_o her_o truth_n may_v be_v peaceable_o improve_v yet_o i_o do_v think_v that_o she_o be_v not_o actual_o deceive_v and_o also_o that_o divers_a eminent_o learn_v do_v consent_n in_o my_o sense_n of_o that_o article_n however_o i_o be_o so_o true_o zealous_a for_o her_o honour_n and_o peace_n that_o i_o whole_o submit_v all_o that_o i_o say_v there_o or_o any_o where_o else_o to_o her_o most_o prudent_a judgement_n and_o though_o i_o may_v most_o easy_o be_v deceive_v yet_o i_o have_v give_v my_o reason_n for_o what_o i_o say_v and_o desire_v to_o be_v try_v by_o they_o not_o by_o prejudice_n and_o number_n and_o zeal_n and_o if_o any_o man_n resolve_v to_o understand_v the_o article_n in_o any_o other_o sense_n than_o what_o i_o have_v now_o explicate_v all_o that_o i_o shall_v say_v be_v that_o it_o may_v be_v i_o can_v reconcile_v my_o doctrine_n to_o his_o explication_n it_o be_v enough_o that_o it_o be_v consistent_a with_o the_o article_n itself_o in_o its_o best_a understanding_n and_o compliance_n with_o the_o truth_n itself_o and_o the_o justification_n of_o god_n however_o he_o that_o explicate_v the_o article_n and_o think_v it_o mean_n as_o he_o say_v do_v all_o the_o honour_n he_o can_v to_o the_o authority_n who_o word_n if_o he_o do_v not_o understand_v yet_o the_o sanction_n
send_v away_o without_o cause_n and_o because_o the_o negative_a be_v in_o this_o case_n late_a than_o the_o affirmative_a it_o must_v enter_v as_o the_o affirmative_n do_v when_o they_o happen_v to_o be_v late_a than_o the_o negative_a add_v to_o this_o that_o for_o the_o introduction_n of_o a_o negative_a against_o the_o possession_n of_o a_o prevail_a affirmative_a it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o invalidate_v the_o argument_n of_o the_o affirmative_a by_o make_v it_o appear_v they_o be_v not_o demonstrative_a for_o although_o that_o may_v have_v be_v sufficient_a to_o hinder_v its_o first_o entry_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o throw_v it_o out_o because_o it_o have_v get_v strength_n and_o reasonableness_n by_o long_a custom_n and_o dwell_n upon_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n and_o have_v some_o force_n beyond_o what_o it_o derive_v from_o the_o first_o cause_n of_o its_o introduction_n and_o therefore_o whoever_o will_v persuade_v man_n to_o quit_v their_o long_a persuasion_n and_o their_o consonant_a practice_n must_v not_o tell_v they_o that_o such_o persuasion_n be_v not_o certain_a and_o that_o they_o can_v prove_v such_o practice_n to_o be_v necessary_a but_o that_o the_o doctrine_n be_v false_a against_o some_o other_o reveal_v truth_n which_o they_o admit_v and_o the_o practice_n evil_a not_o only_o useless_a but_o dangerous_a or_o criminal_a so_o that_o the_o anabaptist_n can_v acquit_v themselves_o and_o promote_v their_o cause_n by_o go_v about_o to_o invalidate_v our_o argument_n unless_o they_o do_v not_o only_o weaken_v our_o affirmative_a by_o take_v away_o not_o one_o or_o two_o but_o all_o the_o confidence_n of_o its_o strength_n but_o also_o make_v their_o own_o negative_a to_o include_v a_o duty_n or_o its_o enemy_n to_o be_v guilty_a of_o a_o crime_n and_o therefore_o if_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o we_o can_v prove_v the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n to_o be_v necessary_a and_o that_o they_o can_v speak_v probable_o against_o all_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o right_a believer_n yet_o it_o be_v intolerable_a that_o they_o shall_v be_v attend_v to_o unless_o they_o pretend_v and_o make_v their_o pretence_n good_a that_o they_o teach_v piety_n and_o duty_n and_o necessity_n for_o nothing_o less_o than_o these_o can_v make_v recompense_n for_o so_o violent_a so_o great_a a_o inroad_n and_o rape_n upon_o the_o persuasion_n of_o man_n whether_o the_o anabaptist_n do_v so_o or_o no_o will_v be_v consider_v in_o the_o sequel_n three_o these_o argument_n which_o be_v in_o this_o section_n urge_v in_o behalf_n of_o the_o anabaptist_n their_o person_n i_o mean_v final_o not_o their_o cause_n at_o all_o but_o in_o order_n to_o their_o person_n can_v do_v the_o less_o hurt_n because_o they_o rely_v upon_o our_o ground_n not_o upon_o they_o that_o be_v they_o be_v intend_v to_o persuade_v we_o to_o a_o charitable_a comport_v towards_o the_o man_n but_o not_o at_o all_o to_o persuade_v their_o doctrine_n for_o it_o be_v remarkable_a that_o none_o of_o they_o have_v make_v use_n of_o this_o way_n of_o argue_v since_o the_o publication_n of_o these_o adversaria_fw-la and_o of_o some_o thing_n they_o can_v never_o make_v use_n as_o in_o that_o exposition_n of_o the_o word_n of_o s._n peter_n be_v baptize_v and_o you_o shall_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v expound_v to_o be_v mean_v not_o in_o baptism_n but_o in_o confirmation_n which_o be_v a_o rite_n the_o anabaptist_n allow_v not_o and_o therefore_o they_o can_v make_v use_n of_o any_o such_o exposition_n which_o suppose_v a_o divine_a institution_n of_o that_o which_o they_o at_o no_o hand_n admit_v and_o so_o it_o be_v in_o divers_a other_o particular_n as_o any_o wary_a person_n that_o be_v cautious_a he_o be_v not_o delude_v by_o any_o weak_a and_o plausible_a pretence_n of_o they_o may_v easy_o observe_v but_o after_o all_o the_o argument_n for_o the_o baptism_n of_o child_n be_v firm_a and_o valid_a and_o though_o shake_v by_o the_o adverse_a plea_n yet_o as_o tree_n that_o stand_v in_o the_o face_n of_o storm_n take_v the_o sure_a root_n so_o will_v the_o right_a reason_n of_o the_o right_a believer_n if_o they_o be_v represent_v with_o their_o proper_a advantage_n ad_fw-la 3_o &_o 13._o the_o first_o argument_n be_v the_o circumcise_n of_o child_n which_o we_o say_v do_v right_o infer_v the_o baptise_v they_o the_o anabaptist_n say_v no_o because_o admit_v that_o circumcision_n be_v the_o type_n of_o baptism_n yet_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o the_o circumstance_n of_o one_o must_v infer_v the_o same_o circumstance_n in_o the_o other_o which_o he_o prove_v by_o many_o instance_n and_o so_o far_o he_o say_v true_a and_o therefore_o if_o there_o be_v no_o more_o in_o the_o argument_n than_o can_v be_v infer_v from_o the_o type_n to_o the_o antitype_n both_o the_o supposition_n &_o the_o superstructure_n will_v be_v infirm_a because_o it_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o circumcision_n be_v a_o type_n of_o baptism_n and_o if_o it_o be_v grant_v it_o can_v infer_v equal_a circumstance_n but_o then_o this_o argument_n go_v far_a and_o to_o other_o and_o more_o material_a purpose_n even_o to_o the_o overthrow_n of_o their_o chief_a pretention_n for_o circumcision_n be_v a_o seal_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n and_o if_o infant_n who_o have_v no_o faith_n yet_o can_v by_o a_o ceremony_n be_v admit_v into_o the_o covenant_n of_o faith_n as_o s._n paul_n contend_v that_o all_o the_o circumcise_a be_v and_o it_o be_v certain_a of_o infant_n that_o they_o be_v reckon_v among_o the_o lord_n people_n as_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v circumcise_v then_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o great_a pretence_n of_o the_o anabaptist_n that_o for_o want_v of_o faith_n infant_n be_v incapable_a of_o the_o sacrament_n come_v to_o nothing_o for_o if_o infant_n be_v admit_v into_o the_o covenant_n of_o faith_n by_o a_o ceremony_n before_o they_o can_v enter_v by_o choice_n and_o reason_n by_o faith_n and_o obedience_n then_o so_o they_o may_v now_o their_o great_a and_o only_a pretence_n notwithstanding_o now_o whereas_o the_o anabaptist_n say_v that_o in_o the_o admission_n of_o the_o jewish_a infant_n to_o circumcision_n and_o of_o christian_a infant_n to_o baptism_n there_o be_v this_o difference_n that_o circumcision_n imprint_n a_o character_n on_o the_o flesh_n but_o baptism_n do_v not_o circumcision_n have_v no_o word_n add_v but_o baptism_n have_v and_o therefore_o infant_n be_v capable_a of_o the_o former_a but_o not_o of_o the_o latter_a for_o they_o may_v be_v cut_v with_o the_o circumcising-stone_n but_o they_o can_v be_v instruct_v with_o the_o word_n of_o baptism_n in_o that_o there_o be_v a_o character_n leave_v by_o which_o they_o may_v be_v instruct_v when_o they_o come_v to_o age_n but_o in_o baptism_n there_o be_v no_o character_n and_o the_o word_n they_o understand_v not_o therefore_o that_o be_v to_o purpose_n but_o this_o be_v not_o i_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v something_o to_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o nothing_o to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o argument_n for_o if_o the_o covenant_n of_o faith_n can_v belong_v to_o infant_n than_o it_o be_v certain_a they_o can_v have_v the_o benefit_n of_o faith_n before_o they_o have_v the_o grace_n that_o be_v god_n will_v do_v they_o benefit_n before_o they_o can_v do_v he_o service_n and_o that_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n in_o religion_n that_o god_n shall_v love_v we_o first_o but_o then_o that_o god_n be_v not_o as_o much_o beforehand_o with_o christian_a as_o with_o jewish_a infant_n be_v a_o thing_n which_o can_v never_o be_v believe_v by_o they_o who_o understand_v that_o in_o the_o gospel_n god_n open_v all_o his_o treasure_n of_o mercy_n and_o unseal_v the_o fountain_n itself_o whereas_o before_o he_o pour_v forth_o only_a rivulet_n of_o mercy_n and_o comfort_n that_o circumcision_n be_v a_o seal_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n saint_n paul_n affirm_v that_o so_o also_o be_v baptism_n if_o it_o be_v any_o thing_n at_o all_o the_o anabaptist_n must_v needs_o confess_v because_o they_o refuse_v to_o give_v baptism_n to_o they_o who_o have_v not_o faith_n and_o make_v it_o useless_a to_o they_o as_o be_v a_o seal_n without_o a_o deed._n but_o then_o the_o argument_n be_v good_a upon_o its_o first_o ground_n but_o then_o for_o the_o title_n repartee_n but_o now_o mention_v that_o circumcision_n imprint_n a_o character_n but_o baptism_n do_v not_o that_o baptism_n have_v a_o word_n but_o circumcision_n have_v none_o they_o be_v just_a nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o as_o that_o character_n imprint_v on_o the_o infant_n flesh_n will_v have_v be_v nothing_o of_o instruction_n to_o they_o unless_o there_o have_v be_v a_o word_n add_v that_o be_v unless_o they_o have_v be_v tell_v the_o meaning_n of_o it_o when_o they_o come_v to_o be_v man_n so_o neither_o will_v the_o word_n
with_o the_o beginning_n and_o principle_n of_o life_n not_o with_o inherent_a quality_n but_o with_o title_n and_o relation_n to_o promise_n and_o estate_n of_o blessing_n and_o assistance_n of_o holiness_n which_o principle_n of_o life_n if_o they_o be_v nourish_v will_v express_v themselves_o in_o perfect_a and_o symbolical_a action_n the_o thing_n be_v easy_a to_o be_v understand_v by_o they_o who_o observe_v the_o manner_n of_o speak_v usual_a in_o scripture_n we_o be_v beget_v to_o a_o lively_a hope_n so_o s._n paul_n the_o very_a consignation_n and_o design_v we_o to_o that_o hope_n which_o be_v lay_v up_o for_o the_o saint_n be_v a_o new_a birth_n a_o regeneration_n the_o beginning_n of_o a_o new_a life_n and_o of_o this_o infant_n be_v as_o capable_a as_o any_o the_o other_o thing_n be_v this_o that_o the_o infant_n vow_n be_v invalid_a till_o it_o be_v after_o confirm_v in_o the_o day_n of_o reason_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v as_o good_a to_o be_v let_v alone_o till_o it_o can_v be_v make_v with_o effect_n i_o answer_v that_o if_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o the_o make_n of_o a_o vow_n i_o confess_v i_o can_v see_v no_o necessity_n in_o it_o nor_o any_o convenience_n but_o that_o it_o engage_v child_n to_o a_o early_a piety_n and_o their_o parent_n and_o guardian_n by_o their_o care_n to_o prevent_v the_o folly_n of_o their_o youth_n but_o then_o when_o we_o consider_v that_o infant_n receive_v great_a blessing_n from_o god_n in_o this_o holy_a ministry_n that_o what_o be_v do_v to_o they_o on_o god_n part_n be_v of_o great_a effect_n before_o the_o ratification_n of_o their_o vow_n this_o prudential_a consideration_n of_o they_o be_v light_a and_o airy_a and_o after_o all_o this_o it_o will_v be_v easy_a to_o determine_v which_o be_v the_o sure_a way_n for_o certain_o to_o baptize_v infant_n be_v huge_o agreeable_a to_o that_o charity_n which_o christ_n love_v in_o those_o who_o bring_v they_o to_o he_o and_o if_o infant_n die_v before_o the_o use_n of_o reason_n it_o can_v do_v they_o no_o hurt_n that_o they_o be_v give_v to_o god_n in_o a_o holy_a designation_n it_o can_v any_o way_n be_v suppose_v and_o be_v not_o pretend_v by_o any_o one_o to_o prejudice_v their_o eternity_n but_o if_o they_o die_v without_o baptism_n it_o be_v then_o high_o question_v whether_o they_o have_v not_o a_o intolerable_a loss_n and_o if_o it_o be_v question_v by_o wise_a man_n whether_o the_o want_n of_o it_o do_v not_o occasion_v their_o eternal_a loss_n and_o it_o be_v not_o question_v whether_o baptism_n do_v they_o any_o hurt_n or_o no_o then_o certain_o to_o baptize_v they_o be_v the_o sure_a way_n without_o all_o peradventure_o ad_fw-la 33._o the_o last_o number_n sum_v up_o many_o word_n of_o affrightment_n together_o but_o no_o argument_n nothing_o but_o bold_a and_o unjustifiable_a assertion_n against_o which_o i_o only_o oppose_v their_o direct_a contradictory_n but_o in_o stead_n of_o they_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o former_a discourse_n be_v this_o that_o whoever_o shall_v pertinacious_o deny_v or_o careless_o neglect_v the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n do_v uncharitable_o expose_v his_o babe_n to_o the_o danger_n of_o a_o eternal_a loss_n from_o which_o there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o recover_v but_o a_o extraordinary_a way_n which_o god_n have_v not_o reveal_v to_o we_o he_o shut_v they_o out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o keep_v they_o out_o who_o be_v more_o fit_a to_o enter_v then_o himself_o he_o as_o much_o as_o lie_v in_o he_o rob_v the_o child_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o a_o title_n to_o the_o promise_v evangelical_n he_o suppose_v that_o they_o can_v receive_v god_n gift_n unless_o they_o do_v in_o some_o sense_n or_o other_o deserve_v they_o and_o that_o a_o negative_a disposition_n be_v not_o sufficient_a preparation_n to_o a_o new_a creation_n and_o a_o obediential_a capacity_n be_v nothing_o and_o yet_o it_o be_v all_o that_o we_o can_v have_v in_o our_o first_o creation_n he_o suppose_v that_o we_o must_v do_v something_o before_o the_o first_o grace_n that_o be_v that_o god_n do_v not_o love_v we_o first_o but_o we_o first_o love_v he_o that_o we_o seek_v he_o and_o he_o do_v not_o seek_v we_o that_o we_o be_v beforehand_o with_o he_o and_o therefore_o can_v do_v something_o without_o he_o that_o nature_n can_v alone_o bring_v we_o to_o god_n for_o if_o he_o do_v not_o suppose_v all_o this_o his_o great_a pretence_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n will_v come_v to_o nothing_o for_o infant_n may_v without_o such_o disposition_n receive_v the_o grace_n of_o baptism_n which_o be_v always_o the_o first_o unless_o by_o the_o superinduce_n of_o actual_a sin_n upon_o our_o nature_n we_o make_v it_o necessary_a to_o do_v something_o to_o remove_v the_o hindrance_n of_o god_n spirit_n &_o that_o some_o grace_n be_v accidental_o necessary_a before_o that_o which_o ordinary_o &_o regular_o be_v the_o first_o grace_n he_o i_o say_v that_o deny_v baptism_n to_o infant_n do_v disobey_v christ_n commandment_n which_o be_v in_o general_a and_o indefinite_a term_n must_v include_v all_o that_o can_v be_v save_v or_o can_v come_v to_o christ_n and_o he_o except_v from_o christ_n commandment_n who_o he_o please_v without_o any_o exception_n make_v by_o christ_n he_o make_v himself_o lord_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o take_v what_o portion_n he_o please_v from_o his_o fellow-servant_n like_o a_o evil_a and_o a_o unjust_a steward_n he_o deny_v to_o bring_v little_a child_n to_o christ_n although_o our_o dear_a lord_n command_v they_o to_o be_v bring_v he_o upbraid_v the_o practice_n and_o charity_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n and_o keep_v infant_n from_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n from_o a_o participation_n of_o the_o promise_n from_o their_o part_n of_o the_o covenant_n from_o the_o laver_n of_o regeneration_n from_o be_v rescue_v from_o the_o portion_n of_o adam_n inheritance_n from_o a_o new_a creation_n from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n which_o belong_v to_o they_o and_o such_o as_o be_v like_o they_o and_o he_o that_o be_v guilty_a of_o so_o many_o evil_n and_o see_v such_o horrid_a effect_n spring_v from_o his_o doctrine_n must_v quit_v his_o error_n or_o else_o open_o profess_v love_n to_o a_o serpent_n and_o direct_a enmity_n to_o the_o most_o innocent_a part_n of_o mankind_n i_o do_v not_o think_v the_o anabaptist_n perceive_v or_o think_v these_o thing_n to_o follow_v from_o their_o doctrine_n but_o yet_o they_o do_v so_o real_o and_o therefore_o the_o effect_n of_o this_o be_v that_o their_o doctrine_n be_v whole_o to_o be_v reprove_v and_o disavow_v but_o the_o man_n be_v to_o be_v treat_v with_o the_o usage_n of_o a_o christian_a strike_v they_o not_o as_o a_o enemy_n but_o exhort_v they_o as_o brethren_n they_o be_v with_o all_o mean_v christian_a &_o humane_a to_o be_v redargue_v or_o instruct_v but_o if_o they_o can_v be_v persuade_v they_o must_v be_v leave_v to_o god_n who_o know_v every_o degree_n of_o every_o man_n understanding_n all_o his_o weakness_n and_o strength_n what_o impress_v every_o argument_n make_v upon_o his_o spirit_n and_o how_o uncharitable_a every_o reason_n be_v and_o he_o alone_a judge_n of_o his_o ignorance_n or_o his_o malice_n his_o innocency_n or_o his_o avoidable_a deception_n we_o have_v great_a reason_n to_o be_v confident_a as_o to_o our_o own_o part_n of_o the_o question_n but_o it_o be_v also_o well_o if_o our_o knowledge_n will_v make_v we_o thankful_a to_o god_n and_o humble_a in_o ourselves_o and_o charitabe_v to_o our_o brother_n it_o be_v pride_n that_o make_v contention_n but_o humility_n be_v the_o way_n of_o peace_n and_o truth_n sect_n xix_o that_o there_o may_v be_v no_o toleration_n of_o doctrine_n inconsistent_a with_o piety_n or_o the_o public_a good_a 1._o but_o then_o for_o their_o other_o capital_a opinion_n with_o all_o its_o branch_n that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o prince_n to_o put_v malefactor_n to_o death_n nor_o to_o take_v up_o defensive_a arm_n nor_o to_o minister_v a_o oath_n nor_o to_o contend_v in_o judgement_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v dispute_v with_o such_o liberty_n as_o the_o former_a strom._n for_o although_o it_o be_v part_n of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n say_v be_v deliver_v per_fw-la secretam_fw-la traditionem_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la non_fw-la licere_fw-la christianis_fw-la contendere_fw-la in_o judicio_fw-la nec_fw-la coram_fw-la gentibus_fw-la nec_fw-la coram_fw-la sanctis_fw-la &_o perfectum_fw-la non_fw-la debere_fw-la jurare_fw-la and_o the_o other_o part_n seem_v to_o be_v warrant_v by_o the_o eleven_o canon_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n which_o enjoin_v penance_n to_o they_o that_o take_v arm_n after_o their_o conversion_n to_o christianity_n yet_o either_o these_o authority_n be_v to_o be_v slight_v or_o be_v make_v
there_o be_v here_o no_o remedy_n no_o second_a thought_n no_o amends_o to_o be_v make_v but_o because_o much_o be_v not_o require_v of_o he_o and_o the_o commandment_n be_v very_o easy_a and_o he_o have_v strength_n more_o than_o enough_o to_o keep_v it_o therefore_o he_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o complain_v god_n may_v ●nd_n do_v exact_a at_o first_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n because_o it_o be_v at_o first_o infinite_o tolerable_a but_o 2._o from_o this_o time_n forward_o this_o covenant_n begin_v to_o be_v hard_a and_o by_o degree_n be●●●e_v impossible_a not_o only_o because_o man_n fortune_n be_v break_v and_o his_o spirit_n trouble_v 〈◊〉_d his_o passion_n disorder_v and_o vex_v by_o his_o calamity_n and_o his_o sin_n but_o because_o man_n upon_o ●●e_z birth_n of_o child_n and_o the_o increase_n of_o the_o world_n contract_v new_a relation_n and_o consequent_o have_v new_a duty_n and_o obligation_n and_o man_n hinder_v one_o another_o and_o their_o faculty_n by_o many_o mean_n become_v disorder_v and_o lessen_v in_o their_o ability_n and_o their_o will_n become_v perverse_a they_o first_o be_v unwilling_a and_o then_o unable_a by_o superinduce_v disposition_n and_o habit_n contrary_a to_o their_o duty_n however_o because_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n that_o man_n shall_v be_v tie_v to_o more_o duty_n god_n do_v in_o the_o several_a period_n of_o the_o world_n multiply_v commandment_n first_o to_o noah_n then_o to_o abraham_n and_o then_o to_o his_o posterity_n and_o by_o this_o time_n they_o be_v very_o many_o and_o still_o god_n hold_v over_o man_n head_n the_o covenant_n of_o work_n 3._o upon_o the_o pressure_n of_o this_o covenant_n all_o the_o world_n do_v complain_v tanta_fw-la mandata_fw-la sunt_fw-la ut_fw-la impossibile_fw-it sit_fw-la seruari_fw-la ea_fw-la say_fw-la s._n ambrose_n gal._n the_o commandment_n be_v so_o many_o and_o great_a that_o it_o be_v impossible_a they_o shall_v be_v keep_v for_o at_o first_o there_o be_v no_o promise_n at_o all_o of_o any_o good_a nothing_o but_o a_o threaten_n of_o evil_n to_o the_o transgressor_n and_o after_o a_o long_a time_n they_o be_v entertain_v but_o with_o the_o promise_n of_o temporal_a good_a thing_n which_o to_o some_o man_n be_v perform_v by_o the_o pleasure_n and_o reward_n of_o sin_n and_o then_o there_o be_v a_o great_a imperfection_n in_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n it_o can_v not_o be_v that_o man_n shall_v remain_v innocent_a and_o for_o repentance_n in_o this_o covenant_n there_o be_v no_o regard_n or_o provision_n make_v but_o i_o say_v 4._o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n be_v still_o keep_v on_o foot_n how_o just_o will_v appear_v in_o the_o sequel_n but_o the_o reasonableness_n of_o it_o be_v in_o this_o that_o man_n live_v in_o a_o state_n of_o awfulness_n may_v be_v under_o a_o pedagogy_n or_o severe_a institution_n restrain_v their_o looseness_n recollect_v their_o inadvertency_n unite_n their_o distraction_n for_o the_o world_n be_v not_o then_o prepare_v by_o spiritual_a usage_n and_o disposition_n to_o be_v govern_v by_o love_n and_o a_o easy_a yoke_n but_o by_o threaten_n and_o severity_n and_o this_o be_v the_o account_n s_o paul_n give_v of_o it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o law_n be_v a_o schoolmaster_n that_o be_v have_v a_o temporary_a authority_n serve_v to_o other_o end_n 3.24_o with_o no_o final_a conclude_a power_n it_o can_v chastise_v and_o threaten_v but_o it_o can_v not_o condemn_v it_o have_v not_o power_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o death_n that_o be_v give_v by_o other_o measure_n but_o because_o the_o world_n be_v wild_a and_o barbarous_a good_a man_n be_v few_o the_o bad_a potent_a and_o innumerable_a and_o sin_n be_v conduct_v and_o help_v forward_o by_o pleasure_n and_o impunity_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o god_n shall_v superinduce_v a_o law_n and_o show_v they_o the_o rod_n and_o affright_v and_o check_v their_o confidence_n leave_v the_o world_n itself_o shall_v perish_v by_o dissolution_n the_o law_n of_o moses_n be_v still_o a_o part_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n some_o little_a it_o have_v of_o repentance_n sacrifice_n and_o expiation_n be_v appoint_v for_o small_a sin_n but_o nothing_o at_o all_o for_o great_a every_o great_a sin_n bring_v death_n infallible_o and_o as_o it_o have_v a_o little_a image_n of_o repentance_n so_o it_o have_v something_o of_o promise_n to_o be_v as_o a_o grace_n and_o auxiliary_a to_o set_v forward_a obedience_n but_o this_o will_v not_o do_v it_o the_o promise_n be_v temporal_a and_o that_o can_v not_o secure_a obedience_n in_o great_a instance_n and_o there_o be_v for_o they_o no_o remedy_n appoint_v by_o repentance_n the_o law_n can_v not_o justify_v it_o do_v not_o promise_v life_n eternal_a nor_o give_v sufficient_a security_n against_o the_o temporal_a only_o it_o be_v bring_v in_o as_o a_o pedagogy_n for_o the_o present_a necessity_n 5._o but_o this_o pedagogie_n or_o institution_n be_v also_o a_o manuduction_n to_o the_o gospel_n for_o they_o be_v use_v to_o severe_a law_n that_o they_o may_v the_o more_o ready_o entertain_v the_o holy_a precept_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o which_o eternal_o they_o will_v have_v shut_v their_o ear_n unless_o they_o have_v have_v some_o preparatory_a institution_n of_o severity_n and_o fear_n and_o therefore_o s._n paul_n also_o call_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o pedagogie_n or_o institution_n lead_v unto_o christ._n 6._o for_o it_o be_v this_o which_o make_v the_o world_n of_o the_o godly_a long_o for_o christ_n as_o have_v commission_n to_o open_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o hide_a mystery_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n and_o repentance_n for_o the_o law_n call_v for_o exact_a obdience_n but_o minister_v no_o grace_n but_o that_o of_o fear_n which_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o the_o performance_n or_o the_o engagement_n of_o exact_a obedience_n all_o therefore_o be_v here_o convince_v of_o sin_n but_o by_o this_o covenant_n they_o have_v no_o hope_n and_o therefore_o be_v to_o expect_v relief_n from_o another_o and_o a_o better_a according_a to_o that_o say_n of_o s._n paul_n the_o scripture_n conclude_v all_o under_o sin_n that_o be_v declare_v all_o the_o world_n to_o be_v sinner_n that_o the_o promise_n by_o the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n christ_n may_v be_v give_v to_o they_o that_o believe_v 3.22_o this_o s._n bernard_n express_v in_o these_o word_n deus_fw-la nobis_fw-la hoc_fw-la fecit_fw-la ut_fw-la nostram_fw-la imperfectionem_fw-la ostenderet_fw-la &_o christi_fw-la avidiores_fw-la nos_fw-la faceret_fw-la our_o imperfection_n be_v sufficient_o manifest_a by_o the_o severity_n of_o the_o first_o covenant_n that_o the_o world_n may_v long_o for_o salvation_n by_o jesus_n christ._n 7._o for_o since_o mankind_n can_v not_o be_v save_v by_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n that_o be_v of_o exact_a obedience_n they_o must_v perish_v for_o ever_o or_o else_o hope_v to_o be_v save_v by_o a_o covenant_n of_o ease_n and_o remission_n that_o be_v such_o a_o covenant_n as_o may_v secure_v man_n duty_n to_o god_n and_o god_n mercy_n to_o man_n and_o this_o be_v the_o covenant_n which_o god_n make_v with_o mankind_n in_o christ_n jesus_n the_o covenant_n of_o repentance_n 8._o this_o covenant_n begin_v immediate_o after_o adam_n fall_n for_o as_o soon_o as_o the_o first_o covenant_n the_o covenant_n of_o work_n be_v break_v god_n promise_v to_o make_v it_o up_o by_o a_o instrument_n of_o mercy_n which_o himself_o will_v find_v out_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n shall_v make_v up_o the_o breach_n of_o the_o man_n but_o this_o shall_v be_v act_v and_o publish_v in_o its_o own_o time_n not_o present_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n man_n be_v by_o virtue_n of_o that_o new_a covenant_n or_o promise_n admit_v to_o repentance_n 9_o adam_n confess_v his_o sin_n and_o repent_v three_o hundred_o year_n together_o do_v he_o mourn_v upon_o the_o mountain_n of_o india_n and_o god_n promise_v he_o a_o saviour_n by_o who_o obedience_n his_o repentance_n shall_v be_v accept_v and_o when_o god_n do_v threaten_v the_o old_a world_n with_o a_o flood_n of_o water_n he_o call_v upon_o they_o to_o repent_v but_o because_o they_o do_v not_o god_n bring_v upon_o they_o the_o flood_n of_o water_n for_o 120._o year_n together_o he_o call_v upon_o they_o to_o return_v before_o he_o will_v strike_v his_o final_a blow_n ten_o time_n god_n try_v pharaoh_n before_o he_o destroy_v he_o and_o in_o all_o age_n in_o all_o period_n and_o with_o all_o man_n god_n do_v deal_v by_o this_o measure_n and_o except_v that_o god_n in_o some_o great_a case_n or_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o a_o sanction_n to_o establish_v it_o with_o the_o terror_n of_o a_o great_a example_n he_o scarce_o ever_o destroy_v a_o single_a man_n with_o temporal_a death_n for_o any_o nicety_n of_o the_o law_n but_o for_o long_a and_o great_a prevarication_n of_o it_o and_o when_o
he_o do_v otherwise_o he_o do_v it_o after_o the_o man_n have_v be_v high_o warn_v of_o the_o particular_a and_o can_v have_v obey_v easy_o which_o be_v the_o case_n of_o the_o man_n that_o gather_v stick_n upon_o the_o sabbath_n and_o be_v like_o the_o case_n of_o adam_n who_o be_v upon_o the_o same_o account_n judge_v by_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n 10._o this_o than_o be_v a_o emanation_n both_o of_o god_n justice_n and_o his_o mercy_n until_o man_n have_v sin_v he_o be_v not_o the_o subject_n of_o mercy_n and_o if_o he_o have_v not_o then_o receive_v mercy_n the_o infliction_n have_v be_v too_o severe_a and_o unjust_a since_o the_o covenant_n be_v beyond_o the_o measure_n of_o man_n after_o it_o begin_v to_o multiply_v into_o particular_a law_n and_o man_n by_o accident_n be_v lessen_v in_o his_o strength_n 11._o from_o hence_o the_o corollary_n be_v plain_a 1._o god_n be_v not_o unjust_a for_o begin_v his_o intercourse_n with_o mankind_n by_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n for_o these_o reason_n i._o because_o man_n have_v strength_n enough_o to_o do_v it_o until_o he_o lessen_v his_o own_o ability_n ii_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n be_v at_o first_o instanced_a but_o in_o a_o small_a commandment_n in_o abstain_v from_o the_o fruit_n of_o one_o tree_n when_o he_o have_v by_o he_o very_o many_o other_o for_o his_o use_n and_o pleasure_n iii_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n shall_v begin_v for_o the_o covenant_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n can_v not_o be_v at_o first_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o it_o no_o opportunity_n for_o it_o it_o must_v suppose_v a_o defailance_n or_o a_o infirmity_n as_o physic_n suppose_v sickness_n and_o mortality_n iv._o god_n never_o exact_v the_o obedience_n of_o man_n by_o strict_a measure_n by_o the_o severity_n of_o the_o first_o covenant_n after_o adam_n fall_n but_o man_n be_v save_v then_o as_o now_o they_o be_v admit_v to_o repentance_n and_o justify_v by_o faith_n and_o the_o work_n of_o faith_n and_o therefore_o the_o jew_n say_v that_o three_o thing_n be_v before_o the_o world_n the_o law_n the_o name_n of_o the_o messiah_n and_o repentance_n that_o be_v as_o s._n paul_n better_a express_v it_o this_o repentance_n through_o faith_n in_o the_o messiah_n be_v the_o hide_a wisdom_n of_o god_n 2.7_o ordain_v before_o the_o world_n unto_o our_o glory_n so_o that_o at_o first_o it_o be_v not_o impossible_a and_o when_o it_o be_v it_o be_v not_o exact_v in_o the_o impossible_a measure_n but_o it_o be_v keep_v in_o pretence_n and_o overture_n for_o end_n of_o piety_n wisdom_n and_o mercy_n of_o which_o i_o have_v give_v account_n it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o wise_a dispensation_n but_o it_o be_v hide_v 12._o for_o since_o it_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o law_n that_o it_o be_v in_o a_o matter_n that_o be_v possible_a it_o can_v be_v suppose_v that_o god_n will_v judge_v man_n by_o a_o impossible_a commandment_n impossibile_fw-it a_o good_a man_n will_v not_o do_v it_o much_o less_o the_o righteous_a and_o merciful_a judge_n of_o man_n and_o angel_n but_o god_n by_o hold_v over_o the_o world_n the_o covenant_n of_o work_n non_fw-la fecit_fw-la praevaricatores_fw-la sed_fw-la humiles_fw-la do_v not_o make_v we_o sinner_n by_o not_o observe_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o minute_n and_o tittle_n of_o the_o law_n but_o make_v we_o humble_a need_v mercy_n beg_v grace_n long_v for_o a_o saviour_n rely_v upon_o a_o better_a covenant_n wait_v for_o better_a promise_n pray_v for_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n repent_v of_o our_o sin_n deplore_a our_o infirmity_n and_o justify_v by_o faith_n in_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n 13._o ii_o this_o then_o be_v the_o great_a introduction_n and_o necessity_n of_o repentance_n we_o neither_o can_v have_v live_v without_o it_o nor_o have_v understand_v the_o way_n of_o the_o divine_a justice_n nor_o have_v feel_v any_o thing_n of_o his_o most_o glorious_a attribute_n but_o the_o admission_n of_o we_o to_o repentance_n be_v the_o great_a verification_n of_o his_o justice_n and_o the_o most_o excellent_a expression_n of_o his_o mercy_n this_o be_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n in_o jesus_n christ_n spring_v from_o the_o fountain_n of_o grace_n purchase_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o holy_a lamb_n the_o eternal_a sacrifice_n promise_v from_o the_o beginning_n always_o minister_v to_o man_n need_n in_o the_o secret_a oeconomy_n of_o god_n but_o proclaim_v to_o all_o the_o world_n at_o the_o revelation_n of_o god_n incarnate_a the_o first_o day_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n 14._o but_o what_o be_v we_o ease_v now_o under_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v a_o law_n of_o great_a holiness_n and_o more_o commandment_n and_o a_o sublime_a purity_n in_o which_o we_o be_v tie_v to_o more_o severity_n than_o ever_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o under_o any_o institution_n and_o covenant_n if_o the_o law_n be_v a_o impossible_a commandment_n who_o can_v say_v he_o have_v strict_o and_o punctual_o perform_v the_o injunction_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o the_o little_a finger_n of_o the_o son_n heavy_a than_o the_o father_n loin_n here_o therefore_o it_o be_v to_o be_v inquire_v whether_o the_o commandment_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v as_o impossible_a to_o be_v keep_v as_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n if_o we_o by_o christ_n be_v tie_v to_o more_o holiness_n than_o the_o son_n of_o israel_n be_v by_o moses_n law_n then_o because_o that_o can_v not_o be_v keep_v than_o neither_o can_v this_o but_o if_o we_o be_v not_o tie_v to_o more_o than_o they_o how_o be_v the_o law_n of_o christ_n a_o more_o perfect_a institution_n and_o how_o can_v we_o now_o be_v justify_v by_o a_o law_n no_o better_o than_o that_o by_o which_o we_o can_v not_o be_v justify_v but_o then_o if_o this_o shall_v be_v as_o impossible_a as_o ever_o why_o be_v it_o anew_o impose_v why_o be_v it_o hold_v over_o we_o when_o the_o end_n for_o which_o it_o be_v hold_v over_o we_o now_o be_v serve_v and_o at_o last_o how_o can_v it_o be_v agreeable_a to_o god_n wisdom_n and_o justice_n to_o exact_v of_o we_o a_o law_n which_o we_o can_v perform_v or_o to_o impose_v a_o law_n which_o can_v just_o be_v exact_v the_o answer_v and_o explicate_v this_o difficulty_n will_v serve_v many_o proposition_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o repentance_n sect_n ii_o of_o the_o possibility_n or_o impossibility_n of_o keep_v the_o precept_n of_o the_o gospel_n 15._o it_o be_v strange_a that_o it_o shall_v be_v possible_a for_o all_o man_n to_o keep_v the_o commandment_n and_o require_v and_o exact_v of_o all_o man_n with_o the_o intermination_n or_o threaten_v of_o horrid_a pain_n pelag._n and_o yet_o that_o no_o man_n shall_v ever_o do_v it_o s._n hierome_n bring_v its_o atticus_n thus_o argue_v dam_fw-la exemplum_fw-la aut_fw-la confitere_fw-la imbecillitatem_fw-la tuam_fw-la and_o the_o same_o also_o be_v the_o argument_n of_o orosius_n and_o the_o reasonableness_n of_o it_o be_v a_o great_a prejudice_n against_o the_o contrary_a affirmation_n of_o s._n austin_n alipius_n &_o evodius_n aurelius_n &_o possidius_n who_o because_o it_o be_v no_o good_a consequence_n to_o argue_v à_fw-fr non_fw-fr esse_fw-la ad_fw-la non_fw-la posse_fw-la and_o though_o it_o be_v not_o do_v yet_o possible_o it_o may_v conclude_v that_o it_o be_v possible_a to_o keep_v the_o commandment_n though_o as_o yet_o no_o man_n ever_o do_v but_o he_o that_o do_v it_o for_o we_o all_o but_o as_o marcellinus_n say_v well_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o say_v that_o by_o a_o man_n a_o thing_n can_v be_v do_v of_o which_o although_o there_o be_v a_o great_a necessity_n and_o a_o severe_a commandment_n yet_o there_o never_o be_v any_o example_n because_o in_o man_n there_o be_v such_o infinite_a variety_n of_o temper_n disposition_n apprehension_n design_n fear_n and_o hope_n purpose_n and_o interest_n that_o it_o be_v next_o to_o a_o miracle_n that_o not_o one_o of_o all_o mankind_n shall_v do_v what_o he_o can_v and_o what_o so_o high_o concern_v he_o but_o because_o this_o 8._o although_o it_o be_v a_o high_a probability_n yet_o be_v no_o certain_a demonstration_n that_o which_o s._n paul_n teach_v be_v certain_o to_o be_v rely_v upon_o that_o the_o law_n can_v not_o do_v it_o for_o ●s_n that_o be_v can_v not_o bring_v we_o justification_n in_o that_o it_o be_v weak_a through_o the_o flesh_n meaning_n that_o because_o we_o be_v so_o weak_a we_o can_v not_o fulfil_v the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o law_n therefore_o we_o can_v not_o be_v justify_v by_o that_o covenant_n mos●_n man_v grave_n facies_fw-la cornata_fw-la impedita_fw-la lingua_fw-la lapideae_fw-la tabulae_fw-la moses_n hand_n be_v heavy_a his_o face_n bright_a his_o tongue_n stammer_n and_o the_o table_n be_v of_o stone_n by_o which_o be_v mean_v that_o the_o imposition_n and_o
very_o often_o destructive_a this_o be_v a_o little_a alteration_n or_o ease_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n but_o not_o enough_o 3_o from_o this_o state_n of_o evil_a thing_n we_o be_v free_v by_o christ_n the_o law_n be_v call_v the_o letter_n the_o ministration_n of_o death_n the_o ministration_n of_o condemnation_n the_o old_a testament_n apt_a to_o amaze_v and_o confound_v a_o sinner_n but_o do_v not_o give_v he_o any_o hope_n of_o remission_n no_o glimpse_n of_o heaven_n no_o ministry_n of_o pardon_n but_o the_o gospel_n be_v call_v the_o spirit_n or_o the_o ministration_n of_o the_o spirit_n the_o law_n of_o faith_n the_o law_n of_o liberty_n it_o minister_v repentance_n it_o enjoin_v holiness_n it_o give_v life_n and_o we_o all_o have_v hope_n of_o be_v save_v 4._o this_o which_o be_v the_o state_n of_o thing_n in_o which_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v represent_v in_o their_o several_a period_n be_v by_o some_o make_v to_o be_v the_o state_n of_o every_o return_a sinner_n and_o man_n be_v teach_v that_o they_o must_v pass_v through_o the_o terror_n of_o the_o law_n before_o they_o can_v receive_v the_o mercy_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o law_n be_v a_o schoolmaster_n to_o bring_v the_o synagogue_n to_o christ_n it_o be_v so_o to_o they_o who_o be_v under_o the_o law_n but_o it_o can_v be_v so_o to_o we_o who_o be_v not_o under_o the_o law_n but_o under_o grace_n for_o if_o they_o mean_v the_o law_n of_o work_n or_o that_o interposition_n which_o be_v the_o first_o intercourse_n with_o man_n they_o lose_v their_o title_n to_o the_o mercy_n of_o the_o gospel_n if_o they_o mean_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n than_o they_o do_v not_o stand_v fast_o in_o the_o liberty_n by_o which_o christ_n have_v make_v they_o free_a but_o whatsoever_o the_o meaning_n be_v neither_o of_o they_o can_v concern_v christian_n for_o god_n have_v send_v his_o son_n to_o establish_v a_o better_a covenant_n in_o his_o blood_n to_o preach_v repentance_n to_o offer_v pardon_n to_o condemn_v sin_n in_o the_o flesh_n to_o publish_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n to_o convince_v the_o world_n of_o sin_n by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n to_o threaten_v damnation_n not_o to_o sinner_n absolute_o but_o absolute_o to_o the_o impenitent_a and_o to_o promise_v and_o give_v salvation_n to_o his_o son_n and_o servant_n 5._o i._o the_o use_n that_o we_o christian_n be_v to_o make_v of_o the_o law_n be_v only_o to_o magnify_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n in_o jesus_n christ_n who_o have_v free_v we_o from_o so_o severe_a a_o covenant_n who_o do_v not_o judge_v we_o by_o the_o measure_n of_o a_o angel_n but_o by_o the_o span_n of_o a_o man_n hand_n but_o we_o be_v not_o to_o subject_v ourselves_o so_o much_o as_o by_o fiction_n of_o law_n or_o fancy_n to_o the_o curse_n and_o threaten_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n or_o of_o moses_n law_n though_o it_o be_v of_o more_o instance_n and_o less_o severity_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o allowance_n of_o sacrifice_n for_o expiation_n 6._o ii_o every_o christian_a man_n sin_v be_v to_o consider_v the_o horrible_a threaten_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o severe_a intermination_n of_o eternal_a pain_n the_o goodness_n of_o god_n lead_v to_o repentance_n the_o severity_n of_o his_o justice_n in_o exact_v great_a punishment_n of_o criminal_o the_o reasonableness_n of_o this_o justice_n punish_v such_o person_n intolerable_o who_o will_v not_o use_v so_o great_a a_o grace_n in_o so_o please_v a_o service_n for_o the_o purchase_n of_o so_o glorious_a a_o reward_n the_o terror_n of_o the_o law_n do_v end_n in_o temporal_a death_n they_o can_v affright_v no_o further_o but_o in_o the_o gospel_n heaven_n and_o hell_n be_v open_v and_o lay_v before_o all_o mankind_n and_o therefore_o by_o these_o measure_v a_o sinner_n be_v to_o enter_v into_o the_o sorrow_n of_o contrition_n and_o the_o care_n of_o his_o amendment_n and_o it_o be_v so_o vain_a a_o thing_n to_o think_v every_o sinner_n must_v in_o his_o repentance_n pass_v under_o the_o terror_n of_o the_o law_n that_o this_o be_v a_o very_a destruction_n of_o that_o reason_n for_o which_o they_o be_v fall_v upon_o the_o opinion_n the_o law_n be_v not_o enough_o to_o affright_v sinner_n and_o the_o terror_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v far_o more_o to_o persevere_v and_o impenitent_a sinner_n than_o the_o terror_n of_o the_o law_n be_v to_o the_o breaker_n of_o it_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o mistake_n be_v this_o the_o law_n be_v more_o terrible_a than_o the_o gospel_n be_v because_o it_o allow_v no_o mercy_n to_o the_o sinner_n in_o great_a instance_n but_o the_o gospel_n do_v but_o then_o if_o we_o compare_v the_o state_n of_o those_o man_n who_o fall_v under_o the_o evil_n of_o the_o law_n with_o these_o who_o fall_v under_o the_o evil_n threaten_v in_o the_o gospel_n we_o shall_v find_v these_o to_o be_v in_o a_o worse_a condition_n than_o those_o by_o far_o as_o much_o as_o hell_n be_v worse_a than_o be_v stone_v to_o death_n or_o thrust_v through_o with_o a_o sword_n this_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o that_o excellent_a author_n of_o the_o divine_a epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n he_o that_o despise_a moses_n law_n die_v without_o mercy_n under_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n of_o how_o much_o sore_a punishment_n suppose_v you_o shall_v he_o be_v think_v worthy_a 29._o who_o have_v tread_v under_o foot_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o have_v count_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o covenant_n wherewith_o he_o be_v sanctify_v a_o unholy_a thing_n and_o have_v do_v despite_n to_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n so_o that_o under_o the_o gospel_n he_o that_o sin_n and_o repent_v be_v in_o a_o far_o better_a condition_n than_o he_o that_o sin_v under_o the_o law_n and_o repent_v for_o repentance_n be_v not_o then_o allow_v of_o the_o man_n be_v to_o die_v without_o mercy_n but_o he_o that_o sin_n and_o repent_v not_o be_v under_o the_o gospel_n in_o a_o far_o worse_a condition_n than_o under_o the_o law_n for_o under_o the_o gospel_n he_o shall_v have_v a_o far_o sore_a punishment_n than_o under_o the_o law_n be_v threaten_v therefore_o let_v no_o man_n mistake_v the_o mercy_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n or_o turn_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n into_o wantonness_n the_o mercy_n of_o the_o gospel_n neither_o allow_v we_o to_o sin_n nor_o inflict_v a_o easy_a punishment_n but_o they_o oblige_v we_o to_o more_o holiness_n under_o a_o great_a penalty_n in_o pursuance_n of_o which_o i_o add_v 7._o iii_o the_o covenant_n by_o which_o mankind_n must_v now_o be_v judge_v be_v a_o covenant_n of_o more_o mercy_n but_o also_o of_o more_o holiness_n and_o therefore_o let_v no_o man_n think_v that_o now_o he_o be_v disoblige_v from_o do_v good_a work_n by_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o covenant_n of_o faith_n for_o though_o the_o covenant_n be_v oppose_v as_o old_a and_o new_a as_o a_o worse_a and_o a_o better_a yet_o faith_n and_o work_n be_v not_o oppose_v we_o be_v in_o the_o gospel_n tie_v to_o more_o and_o to_o more_o excellent_a work_n than_o ever_o the_o subject_n of_o any_o law_n be_v but_o if_o after_o a_o hearty_a endeavour_n we_o fall_v into_o infirmity_n and_o still_o strive_v against_o it_o we_o be_v pity_v here_o but_o there_o we_o be_v not_o under_o the_o first_o covenant_n the_o covenant_n of_o work_n no_o endeavour_n be_v sufficient_a because_o there_o be_v no_o allowance_n make_v for_o infirmity_n no_o abatement_n for_o ignorance_n no_o deduction_n of_o exact_a measure_n no_o consideration_n of_o surprise_v passion_n folly_n and_o inadvertency_n but_o under_o the_o new_a covenant_n our_o hearty_a endeavour_n be_v accept_v but_o we_o be_v tie_v to_o endeavour_v high_a and_o more_o excellent_a thing_n than_o they_o but_o he_o that_o think_v this_o mercy_n give_v he_o liberty_n to_o do_v what_o he_o please_v lose_v the_o mercy_n and_o mistake_v the_o whole_a design_n and_o oeconomy_n of_o god_n love_a kindness_n 8._o iv._o to_o every_o christian_a it_o be_v enjoin_v that_o they_o be_v perfect_a that_o be_v according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o every_o one_o which_o perfection_n consist_v in_o do_v our_o endeavour_n he_o that_o do_v not_o do_v that_o must_v never_o hope_v to_o be_v accept_v because_o he_o refuse_v to_o serve_v god_n by_o something_o that_o be_v in_o his_o power_n but_o he_o that_o do_v that_o be_v sure_a that_o god_n will_v not_o refuse_v it_o because_o we_o can_v be_v deal_v withal_o upon_o any_o other_o account_n but_o by_o the_o measure_n of_o what_o be_v in_o our_o power_n and_o for_o what_o be_v not_o we_o can_v take_v care_n 9_o v._o to_o do_v our_o endeavour_n or_o our_o best_a be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v equal_o in_o all_o the_o period_n of_o our_o life_n according_a to_o the_o work_n or_o effect_v itself_o nor_o according_a to_o
of_o god_n love_n to_o we_o enable_v we_o to_o call_v he_o father_n as_o well_o as_o lord_n thus_o this_o parable_n or_o one_o like_o it_o be_v tell_v in_o the_o book_n of_o hermas_n the_o lord_n command_v his_o servant_n to_o put_v pale_n about_o his_o vineyard_n he_o do_v so_o and_o dig_v a_o ditch_n beside_o and_o root_v out_o all_o the_o weed_n which_o when_o his_o lord_n observe_v he_o make_v he_o coheir_n with_o his_o son_n when_o s._n paul_n exhort_v the_o corinthian_n to_o give_v a_o free_a contribution_n to_o the_o poor_a saint_n at_o jerusalem_n he_o invite_v to_o do_v it_o noble_o and_o cheerful_o not_o as_o of_o constraint_n for_o god_n commandment_n name_v not_o the_o sum_n neither_o can_v the_o degree_n of_o affection_n be_v name_v but_o yet_o god_n demand_v all_o our_o affection_n now_o in_o all_o the_o affirmative_a precept_n the_o duty_n in_o the_o low_a degree_n be_v that_o which_o be_v now_o make_v necessary_a under_o the_o loss_n of_o all_o our_o hope_n of_o eternity_n but_o all_o the_o further_a degree_n of_o the_o same_o duty_n be_v impose_v upon_o the_o condition_n of_o great_a reward_n and_o other_o collateral_a advantage_n of_o duty_n when_o hystaspes_n ask_v cyrus_n the_o persian_a why_o he_o prefer_v chrysantas_n before_o he_o since_o he_o do_v obey_v all_o his_o command_n the_o prince_n answer_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d chrysantas_n do_v not_o stay_v till_o he_o be_v call_v and_o he_o do_v not_o only_o what_o be_v command_v but_o what_o be_v best_a what_o he_o know_v be_v most_o please_a to_o i_o so_o do_v every_o perfect_a man_n according_a to_o the_o degree_n of_o his_o love_n and_o his_o perfection_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 5._o the_o righteousness_n of_o a_o perfect_a man_n consist_v not_o in_o legal_a innocence_n but_o in_o love_n and_o voluntary_a obedience_n this_o be_v that_o charity_n which_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o christianity_n the_o crown_n of_o all_o other_o grace_n that_o which_o make_v all_o the_o external_a work_n of_o obedience_n to_o be_v acceptable_a and_o every_o act_n of_o the_o most_o excellent_a piety_n and_o devotion_n be_v a_o particular_a of_o that_o grace_n and_o therefore_o though_o it_o be_v high_o acceptable_a yet_o it_o be_v also_o command_v in_o the_o general_n and_o in_o the_o sense_n before_o explicate_v and_o he_o that_o do_v no_o more_o than_o he_o be_v particular_o command_v obey_v god_n as_o a_o lion_n obey_v his_o keeper_n meat_n and_o stripe_n be_v all_o the_o endearment_n of_o his_o peace_n and_o service_n qui_fw-la manet_fw-la ut_fw-la moneatur_fw-la semper_fw-la seruos_fw-la homo_fw-la officium_fw-la suum_fw-la stitch_v non_fw-la voluntate_fw-la id_fw-la facere_fw-la meminit_fw-la seruos_fw-la be_v habitu_fw-la haud_fw-la probus_fw-la est_fw-la the_o servant_n that_o must_v be_v call_v upon_o at_o every_o step_n be_v but_o a_o unprofitable_a and_o unworthy_a person_n to_o do_v only_o what_o we_o be_v command_v will_v never_o bring_v we_o to_o the_o portion_n and_o inheritance_n of_o son_n we_o must_v do_v this_o cheerful_o and_o we_o must_v do_v more_o even_o contend_v to_o please_v god_n with_o do_v that_o which_o be_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n strive_v for_o perfection_n till_o perfection_n itself_o become_v perfect_a still_o obey_v that_o law_n of_o son_n love_v the_o lord_n with_o all_o thy_o heart_n till_o our_o charity_n itself_o be_v crown_v therefore_o 19_o xiii_o let_v no_o man_n propound_v to_o himself_o a_o limit_n of_o duty_n say_v he_o will_v go_v so_o far_o and_o go_v no_o further_o for_o the_o commandment_n be_v infinite_a and_o though_o every_o good_a man_n obey_v it_o all_o the_o way_n of_o his_o holy_a conversation_n yet_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v finish_v till_o his_o life_n be_v do_v but_o he_o that_o stint_v himself_o to_o a_o certain_a measure_n of_o love_n have_v no_o love_n at_o all_o for_o this_o grace_n grow_v for_o ever_o and_o when_o the_o object_n be_v infinite_a true_a love_n be_v not_o at_o rest_n till_o it_o have_v possess_v what_o be_v infinite_a and_o therefore_o towards_o that_o there_o must_v be_v a_o infinite_a progression_n never_o stop_v never_o cease_v till_o we_o can_v work_v no_o more_o 20._o fourteen_o let_v every_o man_n be_v humble_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o his_o fail_n and_o infirmity_n multum_fw-la in_o hâc_fw-la vitâ_fw-la ille_fw-la profecit_fw-la qui_fw-la quam_fw-la longè_fw-la sit_fw-la à_fw-la perfectione_n justitiae_fw-la proficiendo_fw-la cognovit_fw-la 36._o say_fw-la s._n austin_n it_o be_v a_o good_a degree_n of_o perfection_n to_o have_v proceed_v so_o far_o as_o well_o to_o know_v and_o observe_v our_o own_o imperfection_n the_o scripture_n conclude_v all_o under_o sin_n not_o only_o because_o all_o have_v fail_v of_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n of_o the_o exactness_n of_o obedience_n but_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o prevarication_n of_o that_o law_n which_o they_o can_v obey_v and_o indeed_o no_o man_n can_v be_v a_o sinner_n but_o he_o that_o break_v that_o law_n which_o he_o can_v have_v keep_v we_o be_v all_o sinner_n by_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n but_o that_o be_v in_o those_o instance_n where_o it_o may_v have_v be_v otherwise_o for_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n be_v not_o impossible_a because_o it_o consist_v of_o impossible_a commandment_n for_o every_o commandment_n be_v keep_v by_o some_o or_o other_o and_o all_o at_o some_o time_n but_o therefore_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o be_v keep_v because_o at_o some_o time_n or_o other_o man_n will_v be_v impotent_a or_o ignorant_a or_o surprise_v and_o for_o this_o no_o abatement_n be_v make_v in_o that_o covenant_n but_o then_o since_o in_o what_o every_o man_n can_v help_v he_o be_v find_v to_o be_v a_o sinner_n he_o ought_v to_o account_v it_o a_o mighty_a grace_n that_o his_o other_o service_n be_v accept_v in_o pursuance_n of_o this_o 21._o xv._n let_v no_o man_n boast_v himself_o in_o the_o most_o glorious_a service_n and_o performance_n of_o religion_n qui_fw-la in_o ecclesiâ_fw-la semper_fw-la gloriosè_fw-la &_o granditer_n operati_fw-la sunt_fw-la &_o opus_fw-la suum_fw-la domino_fw-la nunquam_fw-la imputaverunt_fw-la lapsos_fw-la as_o s._n cyprian_n expression_n be_v they_o who_o have_v great_o serve_v god_n in_o the_o church_n and_o have_v not_o be_v forward_o to_o exact_v and_o challenge_v their_o reward_n of_o god_n they_o be_v such_o who_o god_n will_v most_o certain_o reward_v for_o humility_n without_o other_o external_a work_n be_v more_o please_v to_o god_n than_o pride_n though_o stand_v upon_o heap_n of_o excellent_a action_n it_o be_v the_o say_n of_o s._n chrysostome_n *_o for_o if_o it_o be_v as_o natural_a to_o we_o to_o live_v according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o reason_n as_o for_o beast_n to_o live_v by_o their_o nature_n and_o instinct_n what_o thanks_o be_v due_a to_o we_o for_o that_o more_o than_o to_o they_o for_o this_o and_o therefore_o one_o say_v well_o ne_o te_fw-la jactes_fw-la si_fw-la benè_fw-la servisti_fw-la obsequitur_fw-la sol_fw-la obtemperat_fw-la luna_fw-la boast_v not_o if_o thou_o have_v well_o obey_v the_o sun_n and_o the_o moon_n do_v so_o and_o shall_v never_o be_v reward_v *_o but_o when_o ourselves_o and_o all_o our_o faculty_n be_v from_o god_n he_o have_v power_n to_o demand_v all_o our_o service_n without_o reward_n and_o therefore_o if_o he_o will_v reward_v we_o it_o must_v whole_o be_v a_o gift_n to_o we_o that_o he_o will_v so_o crown_v our_o service_n *_o but_o he_o do_v not_o only_o give_v we_o all_o our_o be_v and_o all_o our_o faculty_n fiant_fw-la but_o make_v they_o also_o irriguous_a with_o the_o dew_n of_o his_o divine_a grace_n send_v his_o holy_a son_n to_o call_v we_o to_o repentance_n and_o to_o die_v to_o obtain_v for_o we_o pardon_v and_o resurrection_n and_o eternal_a life_n send_v his_o holy_a spirit_n by_o rare_a argument_n and_o aid_n external_a and_o internal_a to_o help_v we_o in_o our_o spiritual_a contention_n and_o difficulty_n so_o that_o we_o have_v nothing_o of_o our_o own_o and_o therefore_o can_v challenge_v nothing_o to_o ourselves_o *_o but_o beside_o these_o consideration_n many_o sin_n be_v forgive_v to_o we_o and_o the_o service_n of_o a_o whole_a life_n can_v make_v recompense_n for_o the_o infinite_a favour_n of_o receive_v pardon_n *_o especial_o since_o after_o our_o amendment_n and_o repentance_n there_o be_v remain_v such_o weakness_n and_o footstep_n of_o our_o old_a impiety_n that_o we_o who_o have_v daily_o need_v of_o the_o divine_a mercy_n and_o pity_n can_v challenge_v a_o reward_n for_o that_o which_o in_o many_o degree_n needs_o a_o pardon_n for_o if_o every_o act_n we_o do_v shall_v not_o need_v some_o degree_n of_o pardon_n yet_o our_o person_n do_v in_o the_o period_n of_o our_o imperfect_a work_n work_n but_o after_o all_o this_o all_o that_o we_o can_v do_v be_v no_o advantage_n to_o god_n he_o be_v not_o
profit_v or_o oblige_v by_o our_o service_n no_o moment_n do_v thence_o accrue_v to_o his_o felicity_n and_o to_o challenge_v a_o reward_n of_o god_n or_o to_o think_v our_o best_a service_n can_v merit_v heaven_n be_v as_o if_o galileo_n when_o he_o have_v find_v out_o a_o star_n which_o he_o have_v never_o observe_v before_o 35.7_o and_o please_v himself_o in_o his_o own_o fancy_n shall_v demand_v of_o the_o grand_a signior_n to_o make_v he_o king_n of_o tunis_n for_o what_o be_v he_o the_o better_a that_o the_o studious_a man_n have_v please_v himself_o in_o his_o own_o art_n and_o the_o turkish_a empire_n get_v no_o advantage_n by_o his_o new_a argument_n *_o and_o this_o be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o material_a if_o we_o consider_v that_o the_o littleness_n of_o our_o service_n if_o other_o thing_n be_v away_o can_v not_o countervail_v the_o least_o moment_n of_o eternity_n 8.18_o and_o the_o poor_a country_n man_n may_v as_o well_o have_v demand_v of_o cyrus_n to_o give_v he_o a_o province_n for_o his_o handful_n of_o river_n water_n as_o we_o can_v expect_v of_o god_n to_o give_v we_o heaven_n as_o a_o reward_n of_o our_o good_a work_n 22._o xvi_o but_o although_o this_o rule_n rely_v upon_o such_o great_a and_o convince_a ground_n can_v abolish_v all_o proud_a expectation_n of_o reward_n from_o god_n as_o a_o debtor_n for_o our_o good_a work_n yet_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o destroy_v our_o modest_a confidence_n and_o our_o rejoice_n in_o god_n who_o by_o his_o gracious_a promise_n have_v not_o only_o oblige_v himself_o to_o help_v we_o if_o we_o pray_v to_o he_o but_o to_o reward_v we_o if_o we_o work_v for_o our_o god_n be_v merciful_a 62.12_o he_o reward_v every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n so_o say_v david_n according_a to_o the_o nature_n and_o graciousness_n of_o the_o work_n 8.18_o not_o according_a to_o their_o value_n and_o proper_a worthiness_n not_o that_o they_o deserve_v it_o but_o because_o god_n for_o the_o communication_n of_o his_o goodness_n be_v please_v to_o promise_v it_o promissum_fw-la quidem_fw-la ex_fw-la misericordiâ_fw-la sed_fw-la ex_fw-la justitiâ_fw-la persolvendum_fw-la say_fw-la s._n bernard_n mercy_n first_o make_v the_o promise_n but_o justice_n pay_v the_o debt_n which_o word_n be_v true_a if_o we_o do_v exact_o do_v all_o that_o duty_n to_o which_o the_o reward_n be_v so_o gracious_o promise_v but_o where_o much_o be_v to_o be_v abate_v even_o of_o that_o little_a which_o be_v bind_v upon_o we_o by_o so_o glorious_a promise_n of_o reward_n there_o we_o can_v in_o no_o sense_n challenge_v god_n justice_n but_o so_o as_o it_o signify_v equity_n 8._o and_o be_v mingle_v with_o the_o mercy_n of_o the_o chancery_n gratis_o promisit_fw-la gratis_o reddit_fw-la so_o ferus_fw-la god_n promise_v free_o and_o pay_v free_o if_o therefore_o thou_o will_v obtain_v grace_n and_o favour_n make_v no_o mention_n of_o thy_o deserve_n and_o yet_o let_v not_o this_o slacken_v thy_o work_n but_o reinforce_v it_o and_o enlarge_v thy_o industry_n since_o thou_o have_v so_o gracious_a a_o lord_n who_o of_o his_o own_o mere_a goodness_n will_v so_o plentiful_o reward_v it_o 23._o xvii_o if_o we_o fail_v in_o the_o outward_a work_n let_v it_o be_v so_o order_v that_o it_o be_v as_o little_a imputable_a to_o we_o as_o we_o can_v that_o be_v let_v our_o default_n not_o be_v at_o all_o voluntary_a but_o whole_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o a_o pityable_a infirmity_n for_o the_o law_n be_v a_o covenant_n of_o work_n such_o as_o they_o be_v but_o the_o mind_n can_v not_o make_v amends_o within_o for_o the_o defect_n without_o but_o in_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v otherwise_o for_o here_o the_o will_n be_v accept_v for_o the_o fact_n in_o all_o thing_n where_o the_o fact_n be_v not_o in_o our_o power_n but_o where_o it_o be_v there_o to_o pretend_v a_o will_n be_v hypocrisy_n nequam_fw-la illud_fw-la verbum_fw-la est_fw-la benè_fw-la vult_fw-la nisi_fw-la qui_fw-la benè_fw-la facit_fw-la say_v the_o comedian_n this_o rule_n be_v our_o measure_n in_o the_o great_a line_n of_o duty_n in_o all_o negative_a precept_n and_o in_o the_o period_n of_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n which_o can_v pass_v by_o we_o without_o be_v observe_v but_o in_o the_o material_a and_o external_a instance_n of_o duty_n we_o may_v without_o our_o fault_n be_v disable_v and_o therefore_o can_v only_o be_v supply_v with_o our_o endeavour_n and_o desire_n but_o that_o be_v our_o advantage_n we_o thus_o can_v perform_v all_o god_n will_v acceptable_o for_o if_o we_o endeavour_v all_o that_o we_o can_v and_o desire_v more_o and_o pursue_v more_o it_o be_v accept_v as_o if_o we_o have_v do_v all_o 8.12_o for_o we_o be_v accept_v according_a to_o what_o a_o man_n have_v and_o not_o according_a to_o what_o he_o have_v not_o unless_o we_o can_v neither_o endeavour_v nor_o desire_n we_o ought_v not_o to_o complain_v of_o the_o burden_n of_o the_o divine_a commandment_n for_o to_o endeavour_v true_o and_o passionate_o to_o desire_v and_o contend_v for_o more_o be_v obedience_n and_o charity_n and_o that_o be_v the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o commandment_n matter_n for_o meditation_n out_o of_o scripture_n according_a to_o the_o former_a doctrine_n the_o old_a covenant_n or_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n in_o that_o day_n thou_o eat_v thereof_o thou_o shall_v sure_o die_v 2.17_o curse_a in_o every_o one_o that_o continue_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n to_o do_v they_o 27.26_o and_o thou_o shall_v write_v upon_o stone_n all_o the_o word_n of_o this_o law_n very_o plain_o thou_o shall_v not_o go_v aside_o from_o any_o of_o the_o word_n which_o i_o command_v thou_o this_o day_n 27.8_o to_o the_o right_a hand_n or_o to_o the_o left_a but_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v if_o thou_o will_v not_o hearken_v unto_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n to_o observe_v to_o do_v all_o his_o commandment_n and_o his_o statute_n 28._o then_o shall_v all_o these_o curse_n come_v upon_o thou_o and_o overtake_v thou_o and_o if_o you_o will_v not_o be_v reform_v by_o these_o thing_n but_o will_v walk_v contrary_a unto_o i_o etc._n then_o will_v i_o also_o walk_v contrary_a unto_o you_o and_o will_v punish_v you_o yet_o seven_o time_n for_o your_o sin_n he_o that_o despise_a moses_n law_n die_v without_o mercy_n under_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n 10.28_o the_o new_a covenant_n or_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n we_o be_v justify_v free_o by_o his_o grace_n through_o the_o redemption_n that_o be_v in_o jesus_n christ_n 28._o who_o god_n have_v set_v forth_o to_o be_v a_o propitiation_n through_o faith_n in_o his_o blood_n to_o declare_v his_o righteousness_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n that_o be_v past_a through_o the_o forbearance_n of_o god_n *_o to_o declare_v i_o say_v at_o this_o time_n his_o righteousness_n that_o he_o may_v be_v just_a and_o the_o justifier_n of_o he_o that_o believe_v in_o jesus_n *_o where_o be_v boast_v then_o it_o be_v exclude_v by_o what_o law_n of_o work_n nay_o but_o by_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n *_o therefore_o we_o conclude_v that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o deed_n of_o the_o law_n there_o be_v therefore_o now_o no_o condemnation_n to_o they_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n who_o walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n 28._o for_o as_o many_o as_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n they_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n *_o likewise_o the_o spirit_n also_o help_v our_o infirmity_n because_o he_o make_v intercession_n for_o the_o saint_n according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n *_o and_o we_o know_v that_o all_o thing_n work_v together_o for_o good_a to_o they_o that_o love_n god_n he_o that_o spare_v not_o his_o own_o son_n but_o deliver_v he_o up_o for_o we_o all_o how_o shall_v not_o he_o with_o he_o also_o free_o give_v we_o all_o thing_n etc._n who_o shall_v lay_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o charge_n of_o god_n elect_v it_o be_v god_n that_o justify_v this_o be_v the_o covenant_n that_o i_o will_v make_v with_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n after_o those_o day_n say_v the_o lord_n 12._o i_o will_v put_v my_o law_n in_o their_o mind_n and_o write_v they_o in_o their_o heart_n and_o i_o will_v be_v to_o they_o a_o god_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v to_o i_o a_o people_n all_o shall_v know_v i_o from_o the_o least_o to_o the_o great_a *_o for_n i_o will_v be_v merciful_a to_o their_o unrighteousness_n and_o their_o sin_n and_o their_o iniquity_n will_v i_o remember_v no_o more_o if_o any_o man_n be_v in_o christ_n he_o be_v a_o new_a creature_n old_a thing_n be_v pass_v away_o all_o thing_n be_v become_v new_a 21._o and_o all_o thing_n be_v of_o god_n who_o have_v reconcile_v we_o to_o himself_o by_o jesus_n
christ_n and_o have_v give_v to_o we_o the_o ministry_n of_o reconciliation_n *_o now_o than_o we_o be_v ambassador_n for_o christ_n as_o though_o god_n do_v beseech_v you_o by_o we_o we_o pray_v you_o in_o christ_n stead_n be_v you_o reconcile_v to_o god_n *_o for_o he_o have_v make_v he_o to_o be_v sin_n for_o we_o who_o know_v no_o sin_n that_o we_o may_v be_v make_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n in_o he_o repent_v and_o be_v baptize_v every_o one_o of_o you_o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n 38._o and_o you_o shall_v receive_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o the_o promise_n be_v unto_o you_o and_o to_o your_o child_n and_o to_o all_o that_o be_v afar_o off_o and_o to_o as_o many_o as_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n shall_v call_v and_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o whosoever_o shall_v call_v on_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v save_v 10.13_o moses_n describe_v the_o righteousness_n which_o be_v of_o the_o law_n that_o the_o man_n which_o do_v those_o thing_n shall_v live_v by_o they_o 9_o but_o the_o righteousness_n which_o be_v of_o faith_n speak_v on_o this_o wise_a the_o word_n be_v nigh_o thou_o even_o in_o thy_o mouth_n and_o in_o thy_o heart_n that_o be_v the_o word_n of_o faith_n which_o we_o preach_v that_o if_o thou_o shall_v confess_v with_o thy_o mouth_n the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o shall_v believe_v in_o thy_o heart_n that_o god_n have_v raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a thou_o shall_v be_v save_v death_n be_v swallow_v up_o in_o victory_n o_o death_n where_o be_v thy_o sting_n o_o grave_n where_o be_v thy_o victory_n 56._o the_o sting_n of_o death_n be_v sin_n and_o the_o strength_n of_o sin_n be_v the_o law_n but_o thanks_o be_v to_o god_n which_o give_v we_o the_o victory_n through_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ._n my_o yoke_n be_v easy_a and_o my_o burden_n be_v light_a 4._o for_o what_o the_o law_n can_v not_o do_v in_o that_o it_o be_v weak_a through_o the_o flesh_n god_n send_v his_o own_o son_n in_o the_o likeness_n of_o sinful_a flesh_n have_v for_o sin_n condemn_v sin_n in_o the_o flesh_n that_o the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o law_n may_v be_v fulfil_v in_o we_o who_o walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n his_o commandment_n be_v not_o grievous_a if_o while_o we_o be_v enemy_n we_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n by_o the_o death_n of_o his_o son_n much_o more_o be_v reconcile_v we_o shall_v be_v save_v by_o his_o life_n 5.10_o and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o we_o also_o joy_v in_o god_n through_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n by_o who_o we_o have_v now_o receive_v the_o atonement_n 4·13_n i_o can_v do_v all_o thing_n through_o christ_n which_o strengthen_v i_o my_o grace_n be_v sufficient_a for_o thou_o for_o my_o strength_n be_v make_v perfect_a in_o weakness_n 7.7_o ask_v and_o you_o shall_v have_v seek_v and_o you_o shall_v find_v knock_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v open_v unto_o you_o 32.34_o to_o he_o that_o have_v shall_v be_v give_v and_o he_o shall_v have_v more_o abundant_o have_v therefore_o these_o promise_n let_v we_o cleanse_v ourselves_o from_o all_o filthiness_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n perfect_a holiness_n in_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o prayer_n i._o o_o eternal_a god_n lord_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n father_n of_o man_n and_o angel_n we_o do_v adore_v thy_o infinite_a goodness_n we_o revere_v thy_o justice_n and_o delight_n in_o thy_o mercy_n by_o which_o thou_o have_v deal_v with_o we_o not_o with_o the_o utmost_a right_n and_o dominion_n of_o a_o lord_n but_o with_o the_o gentleness_n of_o a_o father_n treat_v we_o like_o friend_n who_o be_v indeed_o thy_o enemy_n thou_o o_o god_n do_v see_v our_o folly_n and_o observe_v our_o weakness_n thou_o know_v the_o averseness_n of_o our_o nature_n to_o good_a and_o our_o proneness_n to_o commit_v vanity_n and_o because_o our_o imperfect_a obedience_n can_v not_o bring_v we_o to_o perfect_a felicity_n whither_o thou_o do_v design_v we_o the_o great_a god_n of_o all_o the_o world_n be_v please_v to_o make_v a_o new_a covenant_n with_o man_n and_o to_o become_v a_o debtor_n to_o his_o servant_n bless_a be_v god_n and_o bless_v be_v that_o mercy_n which_o have_v do_v so_o great_a thing_n for_o we_o o_o be_v please_v to_o work_v that_o in_o we_o which_o thou_o expect_v from_o we_o let_v we_o not_o lose_v our_o title_n in_o the_o covenant_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n by_o defer_v the_o one_o or_o dishonour_v the_o other_o but_o let_v we_o walk_v worthy_a of_o our_o vocation_n according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o the_o covenant_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n ii_o o_o bless_a jesus_n never_o suffer_v we_o to_o abuse_v thy_o mercy_n or_o to_o turn_v thy_o grace_n into_o wantonness_n let_v the_o remembrance_n and_o sense_n of_o thy_o glorious_a favour_n endear_v our_o service_n and_o let_v thy_o goodness_n lead_v we_o to_o repentance_n and_o our_o repentance_n bring_v forth_o the_o fruit_n of_o godliness_n in_o our_o whole_a life_n imprint_v deep_o upon_o our_o heart_n the_o fear_n and_o terror_n of_o thy_o majesty_n and_o perpetual_o entertain_v our_o spirit_n with_o high_a apprehension_n of_o thy_o love_a kindness_n that_o we_o may_v fear_v more_o and_o love_v more_o every_o day_n more_o and_o more_o hate_v sin_n crucify_a all_o its_o affection_n and_o desire_n passionate_o love_v holy_a thing_n zealous_o follow_v after_o they_o prudent_o conduct_v they_o and_o indefatigable_o persevere_v in_o they_o to_o the_o end_n of_o our_o life_n iii_o o_o bless_a and_o eternal_a god_n with_o thy_o spirit_n enlighten_v our_o understanding_n in_o the_o rare_a mysterious_a secret_n of_o thy_o law_n make_v i_o to_o understand_v all_o the_o most_o advantageous_a way_n of_o duty_n and_o kindle_v a_o flame_n in_o my_o soul_n that_o no_o difficulty_n or_o contradiction_n no_o temptation_n within_o or_o persecution_n without_o may_v ever_o extinguish_v give_v i_o a_o mighty_a grace_n that_o i_o may_v design_n to_o please_v thou_o with_o my_o best_a and_o all_o my_o service_n to_o follow_v the_o best_a example_n to_o do_v the_o noble_a charity_n to_o pursue_v all_o perfection_n ever_o press_v forward_o to_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o high_a call_n in_o christ_n jesus_n let_v we_o rather_o choose_v to_o die_v than_o to_o sin_n against_o our_o conscience_n let_v we_o also_o watch_n that_o we_o may_v omit_v nothing_o of_o our_o duty_n nor_o pretermit_v any_o opportunity_n by_o which_o thou_o can_v be_v glorify_v or_o any_o christian_a instruct_v comfort_v or_o assist_v not_o rest_v in_o the_o strict_a measure_n of_o command_n but_o pass_v forward_o to_o great_a and_o prudent_a signification_n of_o love_n do_v heroic_a action_n some_o thing_n by_o which_o thou_o may_v be_v great_o please_v that_o thou_o may_v take_v delight_n to_o pardon_v to_o sanctify_v and_o to_o preserve_v thy_o servant_n for_o ever_o amen_n chap._n ii_o of_o the_o nature_n and_o definition_n of_o repentance_n and_o what_o part_n of_o duty_n be_v signify_v by_o it_o in_o holy_a scripture_n sect_n i._o the_o greek_n use_v two_o word_n to_o express_v this_o duty_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v from_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d post_fw-la factum_fw-la angi_fw-la &_o cruciari_fw-la to_o be_v afflict_v in_o mind_n to_o be_v trouble_v for_o our_o former_a folly_n it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v phavorinus_n a_o be_v displease_v for_o what_o we_o have_v do_v and_o it_o be_v general_o use_v for_o all_o sort_n of_o repentance_n but_o more_o proper_o to_o signify_v either_o the_o beginning_n of_o a_o good_a or_o the_o whole_a state_n of_o a_o effective_a repentance_n in_o the_o first_o sense_n we_o find_v it_o in_o s._n matthew_n 21.32_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o you_o see_v do_v not_o repent_v that_o you_o may_v believe_v he_o of_o the_o second_o sense_n we_o have_v example_n in_o judas_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 27.3_o he_o repent_v too_o but_o the_o end_n of_o it_o be_v he_o die_v with_o anguish_n and_o despair_n and_o of_o esau_n it_o be_v say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o find_v no_o place_n for_o a_o effective_a repentance_n but_o yet_o he_o repent_v too_o for_o he_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 12.17_o he_o fain_o will_v have_v have_v it_o otherwise_o and_o he_o seek_v it_o with_o tear_n which_o two_o do_v full_o express_v all_o the_o meaning_n of_o this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d when_o it_o be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o better_o and_o effective_a repentance_n there_o be_v in_o this_o repentance_n a_o sorrow_n for_o what_o be_v do_v a_o
in_o the_o remain_a portion_n of_o our_o day_n action_n meet_v for_o repentance_n so_o the_o baptist_n call_v they_o this_o be_v in_o scripture_n by_o way_n of_o propriety_n call_v repentance_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d so_o the_o baptist_n use_v it_o distinguish_v repentance_n from_o its_o fruit_n that_o be_v from_o such_o signification_n 3.8_o exercise_n and_o prosecution_n of_o this_o change_n as_o be_v apt_a to_o represent_v and_o to_o effect_v it_o more_o and_o more_o such_o as_o be_v confession_n weep_v self-affliction_n alm_n and_o the_o like_a so_o s._n paul_n use_v the_o same_o word_n before_o king_n agrippa_n but_o by_o way_n of_o synecdoche_n 26.20_o not_o only_o the_o fruit_n and_o consequent_a expression_n but_o the_o beginning_n sorrow_n also_o be_v signify_v by_o the_o same_o word_n and_o all_o be_v under_o the_o same_o commandment_n though_o with_o different_a degree_n of_o necessity_n and_o expression_n of_o which_o i_o shall_v afterward_o give_v account_n here_o i_o only_o account_v concern_v the_o essential_a and_o constituent_a part_n and_o definition_n of_o repentance_n 10._o all_o the_o whole_a duty_n of_o repentance_n and_o every_o of_o its_o part_n be_v sometime_o call_v conversion_n thus_o godly_a sorrow_n be_v a_o conversion_n or_o change_n and_o upon_o that_o account_n s._n james_n call_v upon_o sinner_n be_v afflict_v and_o mourn_v and_o weep_v let_v your_o laughter_n be_v turn_v into_o mourning_n and_o your_o joy_n into_o weep_v this_o be_v the_o first_o change_n of_o our_o affection_n 4._o which_o be_v attend_v with_o a_o change_n of_o our_o judgement_n when_o we_o do_v no_o long_o admire_v the_o false_a beauty_n of_o sin_n but_o judge_v righteous_o concern_v it_o and_o of_o this_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n give_v testimony_n sure_o after_o that_o i_o be_v turn_v i_o repent_v 31.19_o and_o by_o this_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o hebrew_n express_v the_o duty_n which_o the_o lxx_o indifferent_o render_v by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o be_v best_a render_v conversion_n and_o then_o follow_v the_o conversion_n of_o the_o whole_a man_n body_n and_o soul_n mind_n and_o spirit_n all_o be_v set_v in_o opposition_n against_o sin_n and_o apply_v themselves_o to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o conformity_n to_o jesus_n sect_n ii_o of_o repentance_n in_o general_a or_o conversion_n 1._o repentance_n and_o faith_n in_o scripture_n signify_v sometime_o more_o general_o and_o in_o the_o federal_a sense_n be_v use_v for_o all_o that_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o favour_n which_o the_o holy_a jesus_n reveal_v and_o bring_v into_o the_o world_n they_o both_o signify_v the_o gospel_n for_o the_o whole_a gospel_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o glad_a tiding_n which_o christ_n bring_v to_o all_o mankind_n that_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n or_o exact_a measure_n shall_v not_o now_o be_v exact_v but_o man_n shall_v be_v save_v by_o second_o thought_n that_o be_v by_o repentance_n and_o amendment_n of_o life_n through_o faith_n in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n that_o be_v if_o we_o become_v his_o disciple_n for_o that_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n we_o shall_v find_v mercy_n our_o sin_n shall_v be_v blot_v out_o and_o we_o shall_v be_v save_v if_o we_o obey_v hearty_o and_o diligent_o though_o not_o exact_o this_o become_v his_o disciple_n be_v call_v faith_n that_o be_v come_v to_o he_o believe_v he_o hope_v in_o he_o obey_v he_o and_o consequent_a to_o this_o be_v that_o we_o be_v admit_v to_o repentance_n that_o be_v to_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n for_o he_o have_v god_n exalt_v on_o his_o right_a hand_n to_o be_v a_o prince_n and_o a_o saviour_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o give_v repentance_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n 5.31_o this_o be_v the_o sum_n total_a of_o the_o gospel_n that_o we_o have_v leave_v to_o repent_v suppose_v that_o god_n will_v pardon_v what_o be_v past_a but_o then_o that_o we_o have_v leave_v to_o repent_v suppose_v we_o also_o high_o bind_v to_o it_o it_o be_v in_o mere_a pity_n to_o our_o imfirmity_n our_o need_n and_o our_o misery_n that_o we_o have_v leave_v to_o do_v it_o and_o this_o be_v give_v to_o mankind_n by_o faith_n in_o jesus_n christ_n that_o be_v by_o become_v his_o disciple_n for_o he_o have_v power_n to_o pardon_v sin_n and_o to_o take_v they_o away_o and_o to_o cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o unrighteousness_n viz._n which_o we_o have_v commit_v this_o be_v that_o which_o all_o the_o world_n do_v need_v and_o long_v for_o it_o be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o hide_a mystery_n from_o all_o age_n but_o reveal_v in_o christ_n who_o blood_n as_o s._n clement_n express_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d bring_v to_o all_o the_o world_n the_o grace_n of_o repentance_n 2._o this_o be_v the_o gospel_n for_o the_o gospel_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o faith_n and_o repentance_n the_o gospel_n be_v call_v faith_n by_o s._n paul_n 3.23_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d before_o that_o faith_n come_v we_o be_v under_o the_o law_n shut_v up_o unto_o the_o faith_n which_o shall_v afterward_o be_v reveal_v that_o be_v to_o the_o gospel_n or_o the_o glad_a tiding_n of_o repentance_n which_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o hear_n of_o faith_n for_o faith_n be_v here_o oppose_v to_o the_o law_n that_o be_v the_o covenant_n of_o mercy_n to_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n 2._o must_v mean_v the_o covenant_n of_o repentance_n and_o therefore_o although_o if_o we_o consider_v they_o as_o proper_a and_o particular_a grace_n and_o habit_n they_o have_v differ_v nature_n and_o definition_n yet_o in_o the_o general_a and_o federal_a sense_n of_o which_o i_o now_o speak_v faith_n and_o repentance_n be_v only_o distinguish_v by_o relation_n and_o respect_n not_o by_o substance_n and_o reality_n 20.21_o repentance_n towards_o god_n and_o faith_n towards_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o be_v repentance_n for_o have_v sin_v against_o god_n a_o repentance_n i_o say_v through_o faith_n in_o jesus_n christ_n that_o be_v a_o repentance_n procure_v and_o preach_v and_o enjoin_v by_o christ_n be_v the_o sum_n of_o his_o discipline_n and_o that_o it_o may_v appear_v faith_n and_o repentance_n to_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o differ_v only_o in_o name_n and_o manner_n of_o expression_n s._n paul_n confound_v the_o distinction_n which_o he_o former_o make_v and_o that_o which_o he_o call_v repentance_n towards_o god_n and_o faith_n towards_o our_o lord_n jesus_n in_o his_o sermon_n in_o asia_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n he_o call_v repentance_n from_o dead_a work_n and_o faith_n in_o god_n and_o the_o word_n be_v use_v for_o each_o other_o promiscuous_o in_o s._n luke_n for_o that_o which_o the_o rich_a man_n in_o hell_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d abraham_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d if_o one_o come_v from_o the_o dead_a they_o will_v repent_v no_o say_v abraham_n if_o they_o will_v not_o hear_v moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n then_o if_o one_o come_v from_o the_o dead_a they_o will_v not_o believe_v or_o be_v persuade_v and_o s._n peter_n give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o delay_n of_o the_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o the_o punishment_n of_o the_o obdurate_a jew_n and_o enemy_n of_o christ_n 15._o say_v it_o be_v because_o god_n of_o his_o infinite_a goodness_n expect_v even_o they_o also_o to_o be_v convert_v to_o the_o faith_n or_o become_a christian_n as_o the_o whole_a design_n of_o the_o place_n infer_v and_o this_o he_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o come_n to_o repentance_n that_o be_v to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ._n and_o therefore_o the_o gospel_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o universal_a publication_n of_o repentance_n and_o pardon_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v procure_v for_o all_o they_o who_o be_v his_o disciple_n and_o to_o this_o we_o be_v baptize_v that_o be_v adopt_v into_o the_o religion_n into_o that_o discipleship_n under_o which_o god_n require_v holiness_n but_o not_o perfect_a measure_n sincerity_n without_o hypocrisy_n but_o not_o impeccability_n or_o perfect_a innocence_n 3._o and_o as_o the_o gospel_n be_v call_v faith_n and_o faith_n be_v repentance_n that_o be_v it_o be_v the_o same_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o mercy_n with_o this_o only_a difference_n that_o it_o be_v call_v faith_n as_o it_o relate_v to_o christ_n who_o procure_v this_o mercy_n for_o we_o repentance_n as_o it_o signify_v the_o mercy_n itself_o so_o procure_v so_o baptism_n by_o the_o same_o analogy_n be_v call_v the_o baptism_n unto_o repentance_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o baptism_n of_o repentance_n so_o it_o be_v call_v in_o the_o jerusalem_n creed_n that_o be_v the_o admission_n to_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o the_o father_n of_o c.p._n
his_o child_n 13._o that_o you_o shall_v walk_v worthy_a of_o god_n who_o have_v call_v you_o unto_o his_o kingdom_n and_o glory_n *_o for_o this_o cause_n also_o thank_v we_o god_n without_o cease_v because_o when_o you_o receive_v the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o you_o hear_v of_o we_o you_o receive_v it_o not_o as_o the_o word_n of_o man_n but_o as_o it_o be_v in_o truth_n the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o effectual_o work_v also_o in_o you_o that_o believe_v 9_o how_o much_o more_o shall_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n who_o through_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n offer_v himself_o without_o spot_n to_o god_n purge_v your_o conscience_n from_o dead_a work_n to_o serve_v the_o live_a god_n and_o have_v a_o high_a priest_n over_o the_o house_n of_o god_n 29._o let_v we_o draw_v near_o with_o a_o true_a heart_n in_o full_a assurance_n of_o faith_n have_v our_o heart_n sprinkle_v from_o a_o evil_a conscience_n and_o our_o body_n wash_v with_o pure_a water_n *_o let_v we_o hold_v fast_o the_o profession_n of_o our_o faith_n without_o waver_v for_o he_o be_v faithful_a that_o promise_v *_o and_o let_v we_o consider_v one_o another_o to_o provoke_v unto_o love_n and_o to_o good_a work_n *_o not_o forsake_v the_o assemble_v of_o ourselves_o together_o as_o the_o manner_n of_o some_o be_v but_o exhort_v one_o another_o and_o so_o much_o the_o more_o as_o you_o see_v the_o day_n approach_v for_o if_o we_o sin_v wilful_o after_o that_o we_o have_v receive_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n there_o remain_v no_o more_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n *_o but_o a_o certain_a fearful_a look_v for_o of_o judgement_n and_o fiery_a indignation_n which_o shall_v devour_v the_o adversary_n *_o he_o that_o despise_a moses_n law_n die_v without_o mercy_n under_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n *_o of_o how_o much_o sore_a punishment_n suppose_v you_o shall_v he_o be_v think_v worthy_a who_o have_v tread_v under_o foot_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o have_v count_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o covenant_n wherewith_o he_o be_v sanctify_v a_o unholy_a thing_n and_o have_v do_v despite_n unto_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n for_o the_o time_n be_v come_v that_o judgement_n must_v begin_v at_o the_o house_n of_o god_n 4.17_o and_o if_o it_o first_o begin_v at_o we_o what_o shall_v the_o end_n be_v of_o they_o that_o obey_v not_o the_o gospel_n of_o god_n and_o every_o man_n that_o have_v this_o hope_n in_o he_o purify_v himself_o even_o as_o he_o be_v pure_a 22_o and_o whatsoever_o we_o ask_v we_o receive_v of_o he_o because_o we_o keep_v his_o commandment_n and_o do_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v please_v in_o his_o sight_n and_o he_o that_o overcome_v and_o keep_v my_o work_n unto_o the_o end_n 2.26_o to_o he_o will_v i_o give_v power_n over_o the_o nation_n a_o penitential_a psalm_n collect_v out_o of_o the_o psalm_n and_o prophet_n have_v mercy_n upon_o i_o o_o god_n according_a to_o thy_o love_a kindness_n according_a to_o the_o multitude_n of_o thy_o tender_a mercy_n blot_v out_o my_o transgression_n for_o our_o transgression_n be_v multiply_v before_o thou_o and_o our_o sin_n testify_v against_o we_o our_o transgression_n be_v with_o we_o and_o as_o for_o our_o iniquity_n we_o know_v they_o in_o transgress_v and_o lie_v against_o the_o lord_n and_o depart_v away_o from_o our_o god_n speak_v oppression_n and_o revolt_n conceive_v and_o utter_v from_o the_o heart_n word_n of_o falsehood_n our_o foot_n have_v run_v to_o evil_a our_o thought_n be_v thought_n of_o iniquity_n the_o way_n of_o peace_n we_o have_v not_o know_v we_o have_v make_v we_o crooked_a path_n whosoever_o go_v therein_o shall_v not_o know_v peace_n therefore_o do_v we_o wait_v for_o light_n but_o behold_v obscurity_n for_o brightness_n but_o we_o walk_v in_o darkness_n look_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o behold_v from_o the_o habitation_n of_o thy_o holiness_n and_o of_o thy_o glory_n where_o be_v thy_o zeal_n and_o thy_o strength_n the_o sound_v of_o thy_o bowel_n and_o of_o thy_o mercy_n towards_o i_o be_v they_o restrain_v we_o be_v indeed_o as_o a_o unclean_a thing_n and_o all_o our_o righteousness_n be_v as_o filthy_a rag_n and_o we_o all_o do_v fade_v as_o a_o leaf_n and_o our_o iniquity_n like_o the_o wind_n have_v take_v we_o away_o but_o now_o o_o lord_n thou_o be_v our_o father_n we_o be_v the_o clay_n and_o thou_o our_o potter_n and_o we_o all_o be_v the_o work_n of_o thy_o hand_n be_v not_o wroth_a very_o sore_o o_o lord_n neither_o remember_v iniquity_n for_o ever_o behold_v see_v we_o beseech_v thou_o we_o be_v thy_o people_n thou_o o_o lord_n be_v our_o redeemer_n thy_o name_n be_v from_o everlasting_a o_o lord_n father_n and_o governor_n of_o my_o whole_a life_n leave_v i_o not_o to_o the_o sinful_a counsel_n of_o my_o own_o heart_n and_o let_v i_o not_o any_o more_o fall_n by_o they_o set_a scourge_n over_o my_o thought_n and_o the_o discipline_n of_o wisdom_n over_o my_o heart_n lest_o my_o ignorances_n increase_n and_o my_o sin_n abound_v to_o my_o destruction_n o_o lord_n father_n and_o god_n of_o my_o life_n give_v i_o not_o a_o proud_a look_n but_o turn_v away_o from_o thy_o servant_n always_o a_o haughty_a mind_n turn_v away_o from_o i_o vain_a hope_n and_o concupiscence_n and_o thou_o shall_v hold_v he_o up_o that_o be_v always_o desirous_a to_o serve_v thou_o let_v not_o the_o greediness_n of_o the_o belly_n nor_o the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n take_v hold_v of_o i_o and_o give_v not_o thy_o servant_n over_o to_o a_o impudent_a mind_n there_o be_v a_o word_n that_o be_v clothe_v about_o with_o death_n god_n grant_v it_o be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o portion_n of_o thy_o servant_n for_o all_o such_o thing_n shall_v be_v far_o from_o the_o godly_a and_o they_o shall_v not_o wallow_v in_o their_o sin_n though_o my_o sin_n be_v as_o scarlet_a yet_o make_v they_o white_a as_o snow_n though_o they_o be_v red_a like_o crimson_a let_v they_o be_v as_o wool_n for_o i_o be_o ashamed_a of_o the_o sin_n i_o have_v desire_v and_o be_o confound_v for_o the_o pleasure_n that_o i_o have_v choose_v lord_n make_v i_o to_o know_v my_o end_n and_o the_o measure_n of_o my_o day_n what_o it_o be_v that_o i_o may_v know_v how_o frail_a i_o be_o and_o that_o i_o may_v apply_v my_o heart_n unto_o wisdom_n withhold_v not_o thou_o thy_o tender_a mercy_n from_o i_o o_o lord_n let_v thy_o love_a kindness_n and_o thy_o truth_n continual_o preserve_v i_o for_o innumerable_a evil_n have_v compass_v i_o about_o my_o iniquity_n have_v take_v hold_v upon_o i_o so_o that_o i_o be_o not_o able_a to_o look_v up_o for_o they_o be_v more_o than_o the_o hair_n of_o my_o head_n therefore_o my_o heart_n fail_v i_o but_o thou_o o_o lord_n though_o my_o iniquity_n testify_v against_o i_o save_v i_o for_o thy_o name_n sake_n for_o our_o backslide_n be_v many_o we_o have_v sin_v grievous_o against_o thou_o but_o the_o lord_n god_n will_v help_v i_o therefore_o shall_v i_o not_o be_v confound_v therefore_o have_v i_o set_v my_o face_n like_o a_o flint_n and_o i_o know_v that_o i_o shall_v not_o be_v ashamed_a he_o be_v near_o that_o justify_v i_o who_o will_v contend_v with_o i_o the_o lord_n god_n will_v help_v i_o who_o be_v he_o that_o shall_v condemn_v i_o i_o will_v trust_v in_o the_o lord_n and_o stay_v upon_o my_o god_n o_o let_v i_o have_v this_o of_o thy_o hand_n that_o i_o may_v not_o lie_v down_o in_o sorrow_n s._n paul_n prayer_n for_o a_o holy_a life_n i._o i_o bow_v my_o knee_n unto_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n of_o who_o the_o whole_a family_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n be_v name_v etc._n that_o he_o will_v grant_v unto_o i_o according_a to_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o glory_n to_o be_v strengthen_v with_o might_n by_o his_o spirit_n in_o the_o inner_a man_n that_o christ_n may_v dwell_v in_o my_o heart_n by_o faith_n that_o be_v root_v and_o ground_v in_o love_n i_o may_v be_v able_a to_o comprehend_v with_o all_o saint_n what_o be_v the_o breadth_n and_o length_n and_o depth_n and_o height_n and_o to_o know_v the_o love_n of_o christ_n which_o pass_v knowledge_n and_o may_v be_v fill_v with_o all_o the_o fullness_n of_o god_n through_o the_o same_o our_o most_o bless_a saviour_n jesus_n amen_n the_o doxology_n now_o unto_o he_o that_o be_v able_a to_o do_v exceed_v abundant_o above_o all_o that_o we_o ask_v or_o think_v according_a to_o the_o power_n that_o work_v in_o we_o unto_o he_o be_v glory_n in_o the_o church_n by_o christ_n jesus_n throughout_o all_o age_n world_n without_o end_n amen_n ii_o etc._n o_o most_o gracious_a god_n grant_v to_o thy_o servant_n to_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o knowledge_n of_o thy_o will_n in_o all_o
high_a punishment_n such_o as_o be_v idle_a word_n and_o the_o like_a now_o first_o i_o suppose_v that_o the_o two_o latter_a will_v be_v sound_a to_o be_v both_o one_o for_o either_o god_n have_v not_o forbid_v idleness_n or_o falseness_n or_o he_o have_v make_v no_o restraint_n at_o all_o upon_o word_n but_o leave_v we_o at_o liberty_n to_o talk_v as_o we_o please_v for_o if_o he_o have_v in_o this_o case_n make_v a_o law_n then_o idle_a word_n either_o can_v pretend_v to_o a_o excuse_n or_o it_o must_v be_v for_o the_o smallness_n of_o the_o matter_n or_o else_o it_o must_v fall_v in_o with_o the_o first_o and_o be_v excuse_v because_o they_o can_v always_o be_v attend_v to_o 29._o now_o concern_v the_o first_o sort_n of_o venial_a sin_n it_o be_v not_o a_o kind_n of_o sin_n but_o a_o manner_n of_o make_v all_o sin_n venial_a that_o be_v apt_a for_o pardon_n for_o by_o the_o imperfection_n of_o the_o agent_n or_o the_o act_n all_o great_a sin_n in_o their_o matter_n may_v become_v little_a in_o their_o malice_n and_o guilt_n now_o these_o be_v those_o which_o divine_v call_v sin_n of_o infirmity_n and_o of_o they_o i_o shall_v give_v a_o account_n in_o a_o distinct_a chapter_n under_o that_o title_n 30._o concern_v the_o second_o i_o e._n sin_n venial_a for_o the_o smallness_n of_o the_o matter_n i_o know_v none_o such_o for_o if_o the_o matter_n be_v a_o particular_a that_o god_n have_v express_o command_v or_o forbid_v respective_o it_o be_v not_o little_a but_o all_o one_o to_o he_o as_o that_o which_o we_o call_v the_o great_a but_o if_o the_o particular_a be_v whole_o relate_v to_o our_o neighbour_n the_o smallness_n of_o the_o matter_n do_v not_o absolute_o make_v the_o sin_n venial_a for_o among_o we_o nothing_o be_v absolute_o great_a or_o absolute_o little_a but_o in_o comparison_n with_o something_o else_o and_o if_o a_o vile_a person_n have_v rob_v the_o poor_a woman_n that_o offer_v two_o mite_n to_o the_o treasury_n of_o the_o temple_n he_o have_v undo_v she_o a_o farthing_n there_o be_v all_o her_o substance_n so_o that_o the_o smallness_n of_o the_o matter_n be_v not_o direct_o a_o excuse_n if_o a_o man_n have_v rob_v a_o rich_a man_n of_o a_o farthing_n he_o have_v not_o indeed_o do_v he_o so_o great_a a_o mischief_n but_o how_o if_o the_o rich_a man_n be_v not_o willing_a to_o part_v with_o his_o farthing_n but_o will_v be_v angry_a at_o the_o injury_n be_v it_o not_o a_o sin_n because_o the_o theft_n be_v small_a no_o man_n question_n but_o it_o be_v it_o follow_v therefore_o that_o the_o smallness_n of_o the_o matter_n can_v make_v a_o sin_n venial_a but_o where_o there_o be_v a_o leave_n express_o give_v or_o just_o presume_v and_o if_o it_o be_v so_o in_o a_o great_a matter_n it_o be_v as_o little_a a_o sin_n as_o if_o the_o matter_n be_v small_a that_o be_v none_o at_o all_o 31._o but_o now_o concern_v the_o three_o which_o the_o roman_a school_n dream_v of_o sin_n venial_a in_o their_o own_o nature_n and_o in_o their_o whole_a kind_n that_o be_v it_o which_o i_o have_v be_v dispute_v against_o all_o this_o while_n and_o shall_v now_o further_o conclude_v against_o by_o argument_n more_o practical_a and_o moral_a for_o if_o we_o consider_v what_o be_v those_o particular_n which_o these_o man_n call_v venial_a sin_n in_o their_o whole_a kind_n and_o nature_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o christ_n and_o they_o give_v measure_n differ_v from_o each_o other_o the_o catalogue_n of_o they_o i_o will_v take_v from_o the_o father_n not_o that_o they_o ever_o think_v these_o thing_n to_o be_v in_o their_o nature_n venial_a for_o they_o that_o think_v so_o of_o they_o be_v stranger_n to_o their_o write_n and_o to_o this_o purpose_n bellarmine_n have_v not_o bring_v one_o testimony_n pertinent_a and_o home_o to_o the_o question_n but_o because_o they_o reckon_v such_o catalogue_n of_o venial_a sin_n which_o demonstrate_v that_o they_o do_v mean_a sin_n make_v venial_a by_o accident_n by_o man_n infirmity_n by_o god_n grace_n by_o pardon_n by_o repentance_n and_o not_o such_o which_o be_v so_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n but_o the_o thing_n itself_o will_v be_v its_o own_o proof_n 32._o s._n austin_n reckon_v vanas_fw-la cachinnationes_fw-la in_fw-la escis_fw-la aviditatem_fw-la 78._o &_o immoderatiorem_fw-la appetitum_fw-la in_fw-la vendendis_fw-la &_o emendis_fw-la rebus_fw-la charitatis_fw-la &_o vilitatis_fw-la vota_fw-la perversa_fw-la usum_fw-la matrimonii_fw-la ad_fw-la libidinem_fw-la judicia_fw-la apud_fw-la infideles_fw-la agitare_fw-la dicere_fw-la fratri_fw-la fatue_n vain_a laughter_n greediness_n in_o meat_n a_o immoderate_a or_o ungoverned_a appetite_n perverse_a desire_n of_o dearness_n and_o cheapness_n in_o buy_v and_o sell_v commodity_n the_o use_n of_o marriage_n to_o lustfulness_n and_o inordination_n to_o go_v to_o law_n before_o the_o unbeliever_n to_o call_v our_o brother_n fool._n s._n hierome_n reckon_v jesting_n anger_n and_o injurious_a word_n caesarius_n arelatensis_fw-la the_o bishop_n reckon_v excess_n in_o eat_v and_o drink_v idle_a word_n 13_o importune_v silence_n to_o exasperate_v a_o importunate_a beggar_n to_o omit_v the_o fast_n of_o the_o church_n sleepiness_n or_o immoderate_a sleep_v the_o use_n of_o a_o wife_n to_o lustfulness_n to_o omit_v the_o visitation_n of_o the_o sick_a and_o of_o prisoner_n and_o to_o neglect_v to_o reconcile_v they_o that_o be_v at_o variance_n too_o much_o severity_n or_o harshness_n to_o our_o family_n or_o too_o great_a indulgence_n flattery_n talk_n in_o the_o church_n poor_a man_n to_o eat_v too_o much_o when_o they_o be_v bring_v rare_o to_o a_o good_a table_n forswearing_n unwary_a perjury_n slander_v or_o reproach_n rash_a judgement_n hatred_n sudden_a anger_n envy_n evil_a concupiscence_n filthy_a thought_n the_o lust_n of_o the_o eye_n the_o voluptuousness_n of_o the_o ear_n or_o the_o itch_n of_o hear_v the_o speak_v filthy_a word_n and_o indeed_o he_o reckon_v almost_o all_o the_o common_a sin_n of_o mankind_n s._n bernard_n reckon_v stultiloquium_fw-la vaniloquium_fw-la 14._o otiosè_fw-la dicta_fw-la facta_fw-la cogitata_fw-la talk_v vain_o talk_v like_o a_o fool_n idle_a or_o vain_a thought_n word_n and_o deed_n these_o be_v the_o usual_a catalogue_n and_o if_o any_o be_v reckon_v they_o must_v be_v these_o for_o many_o time_n some_o of_o these_o be_v least_o consent_v to_o most_o involuntary_a most_o ready_a less_o avoidable_a of_o the_o light_a effect_n of_o a_o eternal_a return_n incurable_a in_o the_o whole_a and_o therefore_o plead_v the_o most_o probable_o and_o be_v the_o soon_o likely_a to_o prevail_v for_o pardon_n but_o yet_o they_o can_v pretend_v to_o need_v no_o pardon_n or_o to_o fear_v no_o damnation_n for_o our_o bless_a saviour_n say_v it_o of_o he_o that_o speak_v a_o angry_a word_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v guilty_a of_o hell_n fire_n now_o since_o we_o find_v such_o as_o these_o reckon_v in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o venial_a sin_n and_o s._n austin_n in_o particular_a call_v that_o venial_a to_o which_o our_o bless_a saviour_n threaten_v hell_n fire_n it_o be_v certain_a he_o must_v not_o mean_v that_o it_o be_v in_o its_o own_o nature_n venial_a but_o damnable_a as_o any_o other_o but_o it_o be_v venial_a that_o be_v prepare_v for_o pardon_n upon_o other_o contingency_n and_o cause_n of_o which_o i_o shall_v afterward_o give_v account_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o consider_v 33._o vi_o when_o god_n appoint_v in_o the_o law_n expiatory_a sacrifice_n for_o sin_n although_o there_o be_v enough_o to_o signify_v that_o there_o be_v difference_n in_o the_o degree_n of_o sin_n yet_o because_o they_o be_v eodem_fw-la sanguine_fw-la eluenda_fw-la and_o without_o shed_v of_o blood_n there_o be_v no_o remission_n they_o be_v reckon_v in_o the_o same_o acount_n of_o death_n and_o the_o divine_a anger_n and_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o by_o the_o severity_n and_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n no_o sin_n can_v escape_v for_o curse_a be_v he_o that_o continue_v not_o in_o every_o thing_n write_v in_o the_o law_n to_o do_v they_o the_o law_n be_v a_o covenant_n of_o work_n and_o exact_a measure_n there_o be_v no_o venial_a sin_n by_o virtue_n of_o that_o covenant_n for_o there_o be_v no_o remission_n and_o without_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n we_o can_v not_o be_v ease_v of_o this_o state_n of_o danger_n since_o therefore_o that_o any_o sin_n be_v venial_a or_o pardonable_a be_v only_o owe_v to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n to_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n and_o this_o death_n pardon_v all_o upon_o the_o condition_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o pardon_n none_o without_o it_o it_o follow_v that_o though_o sin_n differ_v in_o degree_n yet_o they_o differ_v not_o in_o their_o natural_a and_o essential_a order_n to_o death_n the_o man_n that_o commit_v any_o sin_n die_v if_o he_o repent_v not_o and_o he_o that_o do_v
ourselves_o slander_n reproach_n and_o the_o like_a yet_o because_o they_o be_v extreme_o common_a they_o be_v such_o to_o which_o if_o a_o continual_a pardon_n be_v not_o offer_v god_n number_n will_v be_v infinite_o lessen_v in_o this_o sense_n every_o sin_n be_v venial_a except_v the_o three_o capital_n reckon_v in_o tertullian_n idolatry_n murder_n and_o adultery_n every_o thing_n but_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o its_o branch_n reckon_v in_o pacianus_n every_o thing_n but_o the_o seven_o deadly_a sin_n in_o other_o now_o according_a to_o the_o degree_n and_o malignity_n of_o the_o sin_n or_o its_o abatement_n by_o any_o lessen_v circumstance_n or_o intervening_a consideration_n so_o it_o put_v on_o its_o degree_n of_o veniality_n or_o be_v pardonable_a every_o sin_n have_v some_o degree_n of_o be_v venial_a till_o it_o arrive_v at_o the_o unpardonable_a state_n and_o then_o none_o be_v but_o every_o sin_n that_o have_v many_o degree_n of_o venial_a have_v also_o some_o degree_n of_o damnable_a so_o that_o to_o inquire_v what_o venial_a sin_n can_v stand_v with_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n be_v to_o ask_v how_o long_o a_o man_n may_v sin_v before_o he_o shall_v be_v damn_v how_o long_o will_v god_n still_o forbear_v he_o how_o long_o he_o will_v continue_v to_o give_v he_o leave_v to_o repent_v for_o a_o sin_n be_v venial_a upon_o no_o other_o acount_n but_o of_o repentance_n if_o venial_a be_v take_v for_o pardonable_a it_o be_v true_a that_o many_o circumstance_n make_v it_o so_o more_o or_o less_o that_o be_v whatever_o make_v the_o sin_n great_a or_o less_o make_v it_o more_o or_o less_o venial_a and_o of_o these_o i_o shall_v give_v account_n in_o the_o chapter_n of_o sin_n of_o infirmity_n but_o if_o by_o venial_a we_o mean_v actual_o pardon_v or_o not_o exact_v nothing_o make_v a_o sin_n venial_a but_o repentance_n and_o that_o make_v every_o sin_n to_o be_v so_o therefore_o 45._o v._o some_o sin_n be_v admit_v by_o holy_a person_n and_o yet_o they_o still_o continue_v holy_a not_o that_o any_o of_o these_o sin_n be_v permit_v to_o they_o nor_o that_o god_n can_v as_o just_o exact_v they_o of_o his_o servant_n as_o of_o his_o enemy_n nor_o that_o in_o the_o covenant_n of_o the_o gospel_n they_o be_v not_o imputable_a nor_o that_o their_o be_v in_o god_n favour_n hide_v they_o for_o god_n be_v most_o impatient_a of_o any_o remain_a evil_a in_o his_o child_n but_o the_o only_a reasonable_a account_n of_o it_o be_v because_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n be_v a_o state_n of_o repentance_n these_o sin_n be_v those_o which_o as_o pacianus_n express_v it_o contrariis_fw-la emendata_fw-la proficiunt_fw-la they_o can_v be_v help_v by_o contrary_a action_n and_o the_o good_a man_n do_v perpetual_o watch_v against_o they_o he_o oppose_v a_o good_a against_o every_o evil_a that_o be_v in_o effect_n he_o use_v they_o just_a as_o he_o use_v the_o great_a that_o ever_o he_o commit_v thus_o the_o good_a man_n when_o he_o reprove_v a_o sin_v person_n over-act_n his_o anger_n and_o be_v transport_v to_o undecency_n though_o it_o be_v for_o god_n some_o be_v over_o zealous_a some_o be_v fantastic_a and_o too_o apt_a to_o opinion_n which_o in_o little_a degree_n of_o inordination_n be_v not_o so_o soon_o discernible_a a_o good_a man_n may_v be_v overjoy_v or_o too_o much_o please_v with_o his_o recreation_n or_o be_v too_o passionate_a at_o the_o death_n of_o a_o child_n or_o in_o a_o sudden_a anger_n go_v beyond_o the_o evenness_n of_o a_o wise_a christian_a and_o yet_o be_v a_o good_a man_n still_o and_o a_o friend_n of_o god_n his_o son_n and_o his_o servant_n but_o then_o these_o thing_n happen_v in_o despite_n of_o all_o his_o care_n and_o observation_n and_o when_o he_o do_v espy_v any_o of_o these_o obliquity_n he_o be_v trouble_v at_o it_o and_o seek_v to_o amend_v it_o and_o therefore_o these_o thing_n be_v venial_a that_o be_v pity_v and_o excuse_v because_o they_o be_v unavoible_a but_o avoid_v as_o much_o as_o they_o well_o can_v all_o thing_n consider_v and_o god_n do_v not_o exact_v they_o of_o he_o because_o the_o good_a man_n exact_v they_o of_o himself_o *_o these_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o doctrine_n we_o be_v to_o practice_v according_o to_o which_o add_v the_o follow_a measure_n 46._o vi_o this_o difference_n in_o sin_n of_o mortal_a and_o venial_a that_o be_v great_a and_o less_o be_v not_o to_o be_v consider_v by_o we_o but_o by_o god_n alone_o and_o can_v have_v influence_n upon_o we_o to_o any_o good_a purpose_n for_o 1._o we_o do_v not_o always_o know_v by_o what_o particular_a measure_n they_o be_v lessen_v in_o general_n we_o know_v some_o proportion_n of_o they_o but_o when_o we_o come_v to_o particular_n we_o may_v easy_o be_v deceive_v but_o can_v very_o hardly_o be_v exact_a s._n austin_n say_v the_o same_o thing_n 78._o quae_fw-la sint_fw-la levia_fw-la &_o quae_fw-la gravia_fw-la peecata_fw-la non_fw-la humano_fw-la sed_fw-la divino_fw-la sunt_fw-la pensanda_fw-la judicio_fw-la god_n only_o not_o man_n can_v tell_v which_o sin_n be_v great_a and_o which_o little_a for_o since_o we_o see_v they_o equal_o forbid_v we_o must_v with_o equal_a care_n avoid_v they_o all_o indeed_o if_o the_o case_n shall_v be_v so_o put_v that_o we_o must_v either_o commit_v sacrilege_n or_o tell_v a_o spiteful_a lie_n kill_v a_o man_n or_o speak_v unclean_a word_n than_o it_o may_v be_v of_o use_n to_o we_o to_o consider_v which_o be_v the_o great_a which_o be_v less_o that_o of_o evil_n we_o may_v choose_v the_o less_o but_o this_o case_n can_v never_o be_v for_o no_o man_n be_v ever_o bring_v to_o that_o necessity_n that_o he_o must_v choose_v one_o sin_n for_o he_o can_v choose_v to_o die_v before_o he_o shall_v do_v either_o and_o that_o be_v the_o worst_a that_o he_o can_v be_v put_v to_o and_o therefore_o though_o right_a reason_n and_o experience_n and_o some_o general_a line_n of_o religion_n mark_v out_o some_o action_n as_o criminal_a and_o leave_v other_o under_o a_o general_a and_o indefinite_a condemnation_n yet_o it_o be_v in_o order_n to_o repentance_n and_o amends_o when_o such_o thing_n be_v do_v not_o to_o great_a caution_n direct_o of_o avoid_v they_o in_o the_o day_n of_o temptation_n for_o of_o two_o infinity_n in_o the_o same_o kind_n one_o can_v be_v big_a than_o the_o other_o we_o be_v tie_v with_o the_o big_a care_n to_o avoid_v every_o sin_n and_o big_a than_o the_o big_a we_o find_v not_o this_o only_a for_o the_o avoid_n of_o the_o great_a sin_n there_o be_v more_o argument_n from_o without_o and_o sometime_o more_o instrument_n and_o ministery_n of_o caution_n and_o prevention_n be_v to_o be_v use_v than_o in_o lesser_a sin_n but_o it_o be_v because_o few_o will_v serve_v in_o one_o than_o in_o another_o but_o all_o that_o be_v needful_a must_v be_v use_v in_o all_o but_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n in_o our_o choice_n that_o can_v be_v considerable_a for_o we_o must_v never_o choose_v either_o and_o therefore_o beforehand_o to_o compare_v they_o together_o whereof_o neither_o be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o other_o be_v to_o lay_v a_o snare_n for_o ourselves_o and_o make_v we_o apt_a to_o one_o by_o undervalue_v it_o and_o call_v it_o less_o than_o other_o that_o affright_v we_o more_o indeed_o when_o the_o sin_n be_v do_v to_o measure_v it_o may_v be_v of_o use_n as_o i_o shall_v show_v but_o to_o do_v it_o beforehand_o have_v danger_n in_o it_o of_o be_v tempt_v and_o more_o than_o a_o danger_n of_o be_v deceive_v for_o our_o heart_n deceive_v we_o our_o purpose_n be_v complicate_v and_o we_o know_v not_o which_o end_n be_v principal_o intend_v nor_o by_o what_o argument_n among_o many_o we_o be_v final_o determine_v or_o which_o be_v the_o prevail_a ingredient_n nor_o be_v we_o competent_a judge_n of_o our_o own_o strength_n and_o we_o can_v do_v more_o than_o we_o think_v we_o can_v and_o we_o remember_v not_o that_o the_o temptation_n which_o prevail_v be_v seek_v for_o by_o ourselves_o nor_o can_v we_o separate_v necessity_n from_o choice_n our_o consent_n from_o our_o be_v betray_v nor_o tell_v whether_o our_o fort_n be_v give_v up_o because_o we_o will_v do_v so_o or_o because_o we_o can_v not_o help_v it_o who_o can_v tell_v whether_o he_o can_v not_o stand_v one_o assault_n more_o and_o if_o he_o have_v whether_o or_o no_o the_o temptation_n will_v not_o have_v leave_v he_o the_o way_n of_o consent_n be_v not_o always_o direct_a and_o if_o they_o be_v crooked_a we_o see_v they_o not_o and_o after_o all_o this_o if_o we_o be_v able_a yet_o we_o be_v not_o willing_a to_o judge_v right_a with_o truth_n and_o with_o severity_n something_o for_o ourselves_o something_o for_o excuse_n something_o for_o pride_n a_o
they_o be_v still_o within_o the_o method_n of_o pardon_n and_o have_v not_o forfeit_v his_o title_n to_o the_o promise_n and_o covenant_n of_o repentance_n but_o there_o be_v a_o sin_n unto_o death_n that_o be_v some_o man_n proceed_v beyond_o the_o measure_n and_o oeconomy_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o usual_a method_n and_o probability_n of_o repentance_n by_o obstinacy_n and_o persevere_v in_o sin_n by_o a_o wilful_a spiteful_a resist_a or_o despise_v the_o offer_n of_o grace_n and_o the_o mean_n of_o pardon_n for_o such_o a_o man_n s._n john_n do_v not_o encourage_v we_o to_o pray_v if_o he_o be_v such_o a_o person_n as_o s._n john_n describe_v our_o prayer_n will_v do_v he_o no_o good_a but_o because_o no_o man_n can_v tell_v the_o last_o minute_n or_o period_n of_o pardon_n nor_o just_a when_o a_o man_n be_v go_v beyond_o the_o limit_n and_o because_o the_o limit_n itself_o can_v be_v enlarge_v and_o god_n mercy_n stay_v for_o some_o long_o than_o for_o other_o therefore_o s._n john_n leave_v we_o under_o this_o indefinite_a restraint_n and_o caution_n which_o be_v decretory_n enough_o to_o represent_v that_o sad_a state_n of_o thing_n in_o which_o the_o refractory_a and_o impenitent_a have_v immerge_v themselves_o and_o yet_o so_o indefinite_a and_o cautious_a that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v too_o forward_o in_o apply_v it_o to_o particular_n nor_o in_o prescribe_v measure_n to_o the_o divine_a mercy_n nor_o pass_v final_a sentence_n upon_o our_o brother_n before_o we_o have_v hear_v our_o judge_n himself_o speak_v sin_v a_o sin_n not_o unto_o death_n be_v a_o expression_n full_o signify_v that_o there_o be_v some_o sin_n which_o though_o they_o be_v commit_v and_o displease_v god_n and_o must_v be_v repent_v of_o and_o need_v many_o and_o mighty_a prayer_n for_o their_o pardon_n yet_o the_o man_n be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o pardon_n that_o be_v he_o be_v within_o the_o covenant_n of_o mercy_n he_o may_v be_v admit_v to_o repentance_n if_o he_o will_v return_v to_o his_o duty_n so_o that_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n be_v have_v a_o title_n to_o god_n love_a kindness_n a_o not_o be_v reject_v of_o god_n but_o a_o be_v belove_v by_o he_o to_o certain_a purpose_n of_o mercy_n and_o that_o have_v these_o measure_n and_o degree_n 32._o i._o a_o wicked_a christian_n that_o live_v vile_o and_o yet_o be_v call_v to_o repentance_n by_o the_o vigorous_a and_o fervent_a sermon_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o grace_n of_o this_o grace_n god_n will_v fain_o save_v he_o will_v he_o be_v and_o desirous_a he_o shall_v live_v but_o his_o mercy_n to_o he_o go_v but_o thus_o far_o that_o he_o still_o continue_v the_o mean_n of_o his_o salvation_n he_o be_v angry_a with_o he_o but_o not_o final_o the_o jew_n be_v in_o some_o portion_n of_o this_o state_n until_o the_o final_a day_n come_v in_o which_o god_n will_v not_o be_v merciful_a any_o more_o even_o in_o this_o thy_o day_n o_o jerusalem_n say_v our_o bless_a saviour_n so_o long_o as_o their_o day_n last_v their_o state_n of_o grace_n last_v god_n have_v mercy_n for_o they_o if_o they_o have_v have_v gracious_a heart_n to_o receive_v it_o 33._o ii_o but_o he_o that_o begin_v to_o leave_v his_o sin_n and_o be_v in_o a_o continual_a contestation_n against_o they_o and_o yet_o fall_v often_o even_o most_o common_o at_o the_o return_n of_o the_o temptation_n and_o sin_n do_v in_o some_o measure_n prevail_v he_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o a_o further_a grace_n near_o to_o pardon_v as_o he_o be_v near_a to_o holiness_n his_o hope_n be_v great_a and_o near_o to_o performance_n he_o be_v not_o far_o from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n so_o our_o bless_a lord_n express_v the_o like_a condition_n he_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d order_v dispose_v towards_o life_n eternal_a and_o this_o be_v a_o further_a approach_n towards_o the_o state_n of_o life_n 34._o iii_o he_o that_o love_v no_o sin_n but_o have_v overcome_v his_o affection_n to_o all_o and_o hate_v all_o but_o yet_o with_o so_o imperfect_a a_o choice_n or_o aversation_n that_o his_o faith_n be_v weak_a and_o his_o repentance_n like_o a_o infant_n this_o man_n be_v in_o a_o better_a state_n than_o both_o the_o former_a god_n will_v not_o quench_v the_o smoke_a flax_n nor_o break_v the_o bruise_a reed_n god_n have_v in_o some_o measure_n prevail_v upon_o he_o and_o as_o god_n be_v ready_a to_o receive_v the_o first_o unto_o the_o mean_n and_o the_o second_o unto_o the_o grace_n of_o repentance_n so_o this_o three_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o receive_v unto_o pardon_n if_o he_o shall_v grow_v and_o persevere_v in_o grace_n and_o these_o be_v the_o several_a stage_n and_o period_n of_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n i._o with_o the_o first_o of_o these_o not_o only_o a_o act_n but_o a_o habit_n of_o sin_n be_v consistent_a but_o how_o long_o and_o how_o far_o god_n only_o know_v ii_o with_o the_o second_o period_n a_o frequency_n of_o fall_v into_o single_a sin_n be_v consistent_a but_o if_o he_o come_v not_o out_o of_o this_o state_n and_o proceed_v to_o the_o three_o period_n he_o will_v relapse_n to_o the_o first_o he_o must_v not_o stay_v here_o long_o iii_o but_o they_o that_o be_v in_o the_o three_o period_n do_v sometime_o fall_v into_o single_a sin_n but_o it_o be_v but_o seldom_o and_o it_o be_v without_o any_o remanent_fw-la portion_n of_o affection_n but_o not_o without_o much_o displeasure_n and_o a_o speedy_a repentance_n and_o to_o this_o person_n the_o proper_a remedy_n be_v to_o grow_v in_o grace_n for_o if_o he_o do_v not_o he_o can_v either_o be_v secure_a of_o the_o present_a or_o confident_a of_o the_o future_a 35._o iu._n but_o then_o if_o by_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n be_v mean_v a_o be_v actual_o pardon_v and_o belove_v of_o god_n unto_o salvation_n so_o that_o if_o the_o man_n die_v so_o he_o shall_v be_v save_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o every_o deliberate_a sin_n every_o act_n of_o sin_n that_o be_v consider_v and_o choose_v put_v a_o man_n out_o of_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n that_o be_v the_o act_n of_o sin_n be_v still_o upon_o his_o account_n he_o be_v not_o actual_o pardon_v in_o that_o for_o any_o other_o worthiness_n of_o state_n or_o relation_n of_o person_n he_o must_v come_v to_o new_a account_n for_o that_o and_o if_o he_o die_v without_o a_o moral_a retraction_n of_o it_o he_o be_v in_o a_o sad_a condition_n if_o god_n shall_v deal_v with_o he_o summojure_v that_o be_v be_v extreme_a to_o mark_v that_o which_o be_v do_v amiss_o the_o single_a act_n be_v high_o damnable_a the_o wage_n of_o it_o be_v death_n it_o defile_v a_o man_n it_o exclude_v from_o heaven_n it_o grieve_v the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o grace_n it_o be_v against_o his_o undertake_n and_o in_o its_o own_o proportion_n against_o all_o his_o hope_n if_o it_o be_v not_o pardon_v it_o will_v bear_v the_o man_n to_o hell_n but_o then_o how_o it_o come_v to_o be_v pardon_v in_o good_a man_n and_o by_o what_o measure_v of_o favour_n and_o proper_a dispensation_n be_v next_o to_o be_v consider_v therefore_o 36._o v._n though_o by_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n and_o the_o law_n of_o the_o covenant_n every_o single_a deliberate_a act_n of_o sin_n provoke_v god_n to_o anger_n who_o therefore_o may_v punish_v it_o by_o the_o severe_a law_n which_o he_o decree_v against_o it_o yet_o by_o the_o oeconomy_n of_o god_n and_o the_o divine_a dispensation_n it_o be_v sometime_o otherwise_o for_o beside_o the_o eternal_a wrath_n of_o god_n there_o be_v some_o that_o suffer_v his_o temporal_a some_o suffer_v both_o some_o but_o one_o god_n use_v to_o smite_v they_o who_o he_o will_v make_v to_o be_v or_o they_o who_o be_v his_o son_n if_o they_o do_v amiss_o if_o a_o wicked_a man_n be_v smite_v with_o a_o temporal_a judgement_n and_o thence_o begin_v to_o fear_n god_n and_o to_o return_v the_o anger_n will_v go_v no_o further_o and_o therefore_o much_o rather_o shall_v such_o temporal_a judgement_n upon_o the_o good_a man_n that_o be_v overtake_v in_o a_o fault_n be_v the_o whole_a exaction_n god_n smite_v they_o that_o sin_n these_o single_a sin_n and_o though_o he_o can_v take_v all_o yet_o will_v demand_v but_o a_o fine_a 37._o vi_o but_o even_o this_o also_o god_n do_v not_o do_v but_o in_o the_o case_n of_o scandal_n or_o danger_n to_o other_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o particular_a of_o david_n because_o thou_o have_v make_v the_o enemy_n of_o god_n to_o blaspheme_v the_o child_n that_o be_v bear_v unto_o thou_o shall_v die_v or_o else_o 2._o when_o the_o good_a man_n be_v negligent_a of_o his_o danger_n or_o dilatory_a in_o his_o repentance_n and_o careless_a
in_o his_o watch_n than_o god_n awaken_v he_o with_o a_o judgement_n send_v with_o much_o mercy_n 38._o vii_o but_o sometime_o a_o temporal_a death_n happen_v to_o good_a man_n so_o overtake_v it_o happen_v so_o to_o moses_n and_o aaron_n for_o their_o fault_n at_o the_o water_n of_o massah_n and_o meribah_n to_o the_o prophet_n of_o judah_n that_o come_v to_o cry_v out_o against_o the_o altar_n in_o bethel_n to_o vzzah_n for_o touch_v the_o ark_n with_o unhallowed_a finger_n though_o he_o do_v it_o in_o zeal_n to_o the_o corinthian_n who_o have_v not_o observe_v decent_a measure_n in_o receive_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n and_o thus_o it_o happen_v say_v some_o of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n to_o ananias_n and_o sapphira_n god_n take_v a_o fine_a of_o they_o also_o salvo_fw-la contenemento_fw-it their_o main_a stake_n be_v secure_v culpam_fw-la hanc_fw-la miserorum_fw-la morte_fw-la piabant_fw-la there_o be_v in_o these_o instance_n this_o difference_n moses_n and_o aaron_n be_v not_o smite_v in_o their_o sin_n but_o for_o it_o and_o as_o be_v not_o doubt_v after_o they_o have_v repent_v but_o vzzah_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o ananias_n and_o sapphira_n and_o the_o corinthian_n die_v not_o only_o for_o their_o sin_n but_o in_o it_o too_o and_o yet_o it_o be_v hope_v god_n anger_n go_v no_o further_o than_o that_o death_n because_o in_o every_o such_o person_n who_o live_v well_o and_o yet_o be_v overtake_v in_o a_o fault_n there_o be_v much_o of_o infirmity_n and_o imperfection_n of_o choice_n even_o when_o there_o be_v some_o degree_n of_o wilfulness_n and_o a_o wicked_a heart_n and_o though_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o suppose_v that_o such_o person_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o that_o judgement_n and_o the_o approach_n of_o that_o death_n do_v moral_o retract_v the_o sinful_a action_n by_o a_o act_n of_o repentance_n and_o that_o upon_o that_o account_n they_o find_v the_o effect_n of_o the_o divine_a mercy_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n who_o be_v slay_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n yet_o if_o it_o shall_v happen_v that_o any_o of_o they_o die_v so_o sudden_o as_o not_o to_o have_v power_n to_o exercise_v one_o act_n of_o repentance_n though_o the_o case_n be_v hard_o yet_o it_o be_v to_o be_v hope_v that_o even_o the_o habitual_a repentance_n and_o hatred_n of_o sin_n by_o which_o they_o please_v god_n in_o the_o great_a portion_n of_o their_o life_n will_v have_v some_o influence_n upon_o this_o also_o but_o this_o case_n be_v but_o seldom_o and_o god_n mercy_n be_v very_o great_a and_o glorious_a but_o because_o there_o be_v in_o this_o case_n no_o warrant_n and_o this_o case_n may_v happen_v often_o than_o it_o do_v even_o to_o any_o one_o that_o sin_v one_o wilful_a sin_n it_o be_v enough_o to_o all_o consider_v person_n to_o make_v they_o fear_v but_o the_o fool_n sin_v and_o be_v confident_a 39_o viii_o but_o if_o such_o overtake_v person_n do_v live_v than_o god_n dispensation_n be_v all_o mercy_n even_o though_o he_o strike_v the_o sinner_n for_o he_o do_v it_o for_o good_a for_o god_n be_v merciful_a and_o know_v our_o weakness_n our_o natural_a and_o circumstant_fw-la folly_n he_o therefore_o recall_v the_o sin_v man_n he_o strike_v he_o sharp_o or_o he_o correct_v he_o gentle_o or_o he_o call_v upon_o he_o hasty_o as_o god_n please_v or_o as_o the_o man_n needs_o the_o man_n be_v fall_v from_o the_o favour_n or_o grace_n of_o god_n but_o i_o say_v fall_v only_o from_o one_o step_n of_o grace_n and_o god_n be_v more_o ready_a to_o receive_v he_o than_o the_o man_n be_v to_o return_v and_o provide_v that_o he_o repent_v speedy_o and_o neither_o add_v a_o new_a crime_n nor_o neglect_v this_o his_o state_n of_o grace_n be_v but_o allay_v and_o disorder_v not_o break_v in_o piece_n or_o destroy_v 40._o ix_o i_o find_v this_o thing_n rare_o well_o discourse_v of_o by_o some_o of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n tertullia_n word_n be_v excellent_a word_n to_o this_o purpose_n licet_fw-la perisse_fw-la dicatur_fw-la erit_fw-la &_o de_fw-la perditionis_fw-la genere_fw-la retractare_fw-la quia_fw-la &_o ovis_fw-la non_fw-la moriendo_fw-la sed_fw-la errando_fw-la 7._o &_o drachma_n non_fw-la intereundo_fw-la sed_fw-la latitando_fw-la perierunt_fw-la ita_fw-la licet_fw-la dici_fw-la perisse_fw-la quod_fw-la salvum_fw-la est_fw-la that_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v lose_v which_o be_v miss_v and_o the_o sheep_n that_o go_v astray_o be_v also_o lose_v and_o so_o be_v the_o groat_n which_o yet_o be_v but_o lay_v aside_o it_o be_v so_o lose_v that_o it_o be_v find_v again_o and_o thus_o that_o may_v be_v say_v to_o have_v perish_v which_o yet_o be_v safe_a perit_n igitur_fw-la &_o fidelis_fw-la elapsus_fw-la in_o spectaculum_fw-la quadrigarii_fw-la furoris_fw-la &_o gladiatorii_fw-la cruoris_fw-la &_o scenicae_fw-la foeditatis_fw-la xisticae_fw-la vanitatis_fw-la in_fw-la lusus_fw-la in_fw-la convivia_fw-la saecularis_fw-la solennitatis_fw-la in_fw-la officium_fw-la in_fw-la ministerium_fw-la alienae_n idololatriae_fw-la aliquas_fw-la art_n adhibuit_fw-la curiositatis_fw-la in_fw-la verbum_fw-la ancipitis_fw-la negotiationis_fw-la impegit_fw-la ob_fw-la tale_n quid_fw-la extra_fw-la gregem_fw-la datus_fw-la est_fw-la vel_fw-la &_o ipse_fw-la fortè_fw-la irâ_fw-la tumore_fw-la emulatione_fw-la quod_fw-la denique_fw-la saepe_fw-la fit_a dedignatione_fw-la castigationis_fw-la abrupit_fw-la debet_fw-la requiri_fw-la atque_fw-la revocari_fw-la the_o christian_a be_v in_o some_o sort_n perish_v who_o sin_n by_o behold_v bloody_a or_o unchaste_a spectacle_n who_o minister_v to_o the_o sin_n of_o other_o who_o offend_v by_o anger_n emulation_n rage_n and_o swell_a too_o severe_a animadversion_n this_o man_n must_v be_v seek_v for_o and_o call_v back_o but_o this_o man_n be_v not_o quite_o lose_v quod_fw-la potest_fw-la recuperari_fw-la non_fw-la perit_fw-la nisi_fw-la foris_fw-la perseveravit_fw-la benè_fw-la interpretaberis_fw-la parabolam_fw-la viventem_fw-la adhuc_fw-la revocans_fw-la peccatorem_fw-la that_o which_o may_v be_v recover_v be_v but_o as_o it_o be_v lose_v unless_o it_o remain_v abroad_o and_o return_v not_o to_o the_o place_n from_o whence_o it_o wander_v 41._o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n s._n cyprian_a and_o s._n ambrose_n discourse_n of_o the_o parable_n of_o he_o that_o fall_v among_o the_o thief_n and_o be_v wound_v and_o half_a dead_a such_o be_v they_o who_o in_o time_n of_o persecution_n fall_v away_o into_o dissimulation_n nec_fw-la putemus_fw-la mortuos_fw-la esse_fw-la 52._o sed_fw-la magis_fw-la semianimes_fw-la jacere_fw-la eos_fw-la quos_fw-la persecutione_n funestâ_fw-la sauciatos_fw-la videmus_fw-la qui_fw-la si_fw-la in_o totum_fw-la mortui_fw-la essent_fw-la nunquam_fw-la de_fw-la eisdem_fw-la postmodùm_fw-la &_o confessores_fw-la &_o martyr_n fierent_fw-la for_o if_o these_o be_v quite_o dead_a you_o shall_v not_o find_v of_o they_o to_o return_v to_o life_n and_o to_o become_v martyr_n and_o confessor_n for_o that_o faith_n which_o through_o weakness_n they_o do_v seem_o abjure_v these_o man_n therefore_o be_v but_o wound_v and_o half_a dead_a for_o they_o still_o keep_v the_o faith_n they_o preserve_v their_o title_n to_o the_o covenant_n and_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o repentance_n quam_fw-la fidem_fw-la qui_fw-la habet_fw-la 10._o vitam_fw-la habet_fw-la say_v s._n ambrose_n he_o that_o have_v this_o faith_n have_v life_n that_o be_v he_o be_v not_o exclude_v from_o pardon_n who_o therefore_o peradventure_o the_o good_a samaritan_n do_v not_o pass_v by_o because_o he_o find_v there_o be_v life_n in_o he_o some_o principle_n by_o which_o he_o may_v live_v again_o now_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o faith_n so_o it_o be_v of_o charity_n and_o the_o other_o grace_n every_o act_n of_o sin_n take_v away_o something_o from_o the_o contrary_a grace_n but_o if_o the_o root_n abide_v in_o the_o ground_n the_o plant_n be_v still_o alive_a and_o may_v bring_v forth_o fruit_n again_o but_o he_o only_o be_v dead_a who_o have_v throw_v god_n off_o for_o ever_o 4.1_o or_o entire_o with_o his_o very_a heart_n so_o s._n ambrose_n to_o be_v dead_a in_o trespass_n and_o sin_n which_o be_v the_o phrase_n of_o s._n paul_n be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o expression_n of_o s._n john_n of_o sin_v a_o sin_n unto_o death_n that_o be_v habitual_a refractory_a pertinacious_a and_o incorrigible_a sinner_n in_o who_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o hope_n or_o sign_n of_o life_n these_o be_v they_o upon_o who_o as_o s._n paul_n expression_n be_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v come_v upon_o they_o to_o the_o uttermost_a 2.16_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d unto_o death_n so_o be_v their_o sin_n it_o be_v a_o sin_n unto_o death_n so_o be_v their_o punishment_n the_o result_n of_o these_o consideration_n be_v this_o he_o that_o commit_v one_o act_n of_o a_o wilful_a sin_n have_v provoke_v god_n to_o anger_n which_o whether_o it_o will_v be_v final_a or_o no_o we_o can_v know_v but_o by_o the_o event_n by_o his_o forbear_v we_o and_o call_v
severe_o forbid_v every_o single_a action_n of_o sin_n so_o with_o great_a caution_n he_o provide_v that_o we_o be_v not_o guilty_a of_o a_o sinful_a habit_n 20._o let_v not_o sin_n reign_v in_o your_o mortal_a body_n we_o must_v not_o be_v servant_n of_o sin_n not_o sell_v under_o sin_n that_o sin_n have_v no_o dominion_n over_o we_o that_o be_v not_o only_o that_o we_o do_v not_o repeat_v the_o action_n of_o sin_n but_o that_o we_o be_v not_o enslave_v to_o it_o under_o the_o power_n of_o it_o of_o such_o a_o lose_a liberty_n that_o we_o can_v resist_v the_o temptation_n for_o he_o that_o be_v so_o be_v guilty_a before_o god_n although_o no_o temptation_n come_v such_o be_v they_o who_o s._n peter_n note_n that_o can_v cease_v from_o sin_n and_o indeed_o we_o can_v but_o confess_v the_o reasonableness_n of_o this_o for_o all_o man_n hate_v such_o person_n who_o mind_n be_v habitual_o averse_a from_o they_o who_o watch_n for_o opportunity_n to_o do_v they_o evil_a office_n who_o lose_v none_o that_o be_v offer_v who_o seek_v for_o more_o who_o delight_n in_o our_o displeasure_n who_o oftentimes_o effect_n what_o they_o malicious_o will_n saul_n be_v david_n enemy_n even_o when_o he_o be_v asleep_a for_o the_o evil_a will_n and_o the_o contradict_a mind_n and_o the_o spiteful_a heart_n be_v worse_o than_o the_o crooked_a or_o injurious_a hand_n and_o as_o grace_n be_v a_o principle_n of_o good_a so_o be_v this_o of_o evil_n and_o therefore_o as_o the_o one_o denominate_v the_o subject_a gracious_a so_o the_o other_o sinful_a both_o of_o they_o inherent_a that_o give_v by_o god_n this_o introduce_v by_o our_o own_o unworthiness_n *_o he_o that_o sin_n in_o a_o single_a act_n do_v a_o injury_n to_o god_n but_o he_o that_o do_v it_o habitual_o he_o that_o can_v do_v otherwise_o be_v his_o essential_a enemy_n the_o first_o be_v like_o a_o offend_a servant_n who_o deserve_v to_o be_v throw_v away_o but_o in_o a_o vicious_a habit_n there_o be_v a_o antipathy_n the_o man_n be_v god_n enemy_n as_o a_o wolf_n to_o the_o lamb_n as_o the_o hyaena_fw-la to_o the_o dog_n he_o that_o commit_v a_o single_a sin_n have_v stain_v his_o skin_n and_o throw_v dirt_n upon_o it_o but_o a_o habitual_a sinner_n be_v a_o ethiop_n and_o must_v be_v stay_v alive_a before_o his_o blackness_n will_v disappear_v 13.23_o 28._o viii_o a_o man_n be_v call_v just_a or_o unjust_a by_o reason_n of_o his_o disposition_n to_o and_o preparation_n for_o a_o act_n and_o therefore_o much_o more_o for_o the_o habit_n paratum_fw-la est_fw-la cor_fw-la meum_fw-la deus_fw-la o_o god_n my_o heart_n be_v ready_a my_o heart_n be_v ready_a and_o s._n john_n have_v the_o reward_n of_o martyrdom_n because_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o die_v for_o his_o lord_n though_o he_o be_v not_o permit_v and_o s._n austin_n affirm_v that_o the_o continency_n of_o abraham_n be_v as_o certain_o crown_v as_o the_o continence_n of_o john_n 21._o it_o be_v as_o acceptable_a to_o god_n to_o have_v a_o chaste_a spirit_n as_o a_o virgin_n body_n that_o be_v habitual_a continence_n be_v as_o please_v as_o actual_a thus_o a_o man_n may_v be_v a_o persecutor_n or_o a_o murderer_n if_o he_o have_v a_o heart_n ready_a to_o do_v it_o and_o if_o a_o lustful_a soul_n be_v a_o adulteress_n because_o the_o desire_n be_v a_o sin_n it_o follow_v that_o the_o habit_n be_v a_o particular_a state_n of_o sin_n distinct_a from_o the_o act_n because_o it_o be_v a_o state_n of_o vicious_a desire_n and_o as_o a_o body_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v lustful_a though_o it_o be_v asleep_a or_o eat_v without_o the_o sense_n of_o actual_a urtication_n and_o violence_n by_o reason_n of_o its_o constitution_n so_o may_v the_o soul_n by_o the_o reason_n of_o its_o habit_n that_o be_v its_o vicious_a principle_n and_o base_a effect_n of_o sin_n be_v hate_v by_o god_n and_o condemn_v upon_o that_o account_n 29._o so_o that_o a_o habit_n be_v not_o only_o distinct_a from_o its_o act_n in_o the_o manner_n of_o be_v as_o rhetoric_n from_o logic_n in_o zeno_n as_o a_o fist_n from_o a_o palm_n as_o a_o bird_n from_o the_o egg_n and_o the_o flower_n from_o the_o gemm_n but_o a_o habit_n differ_v from_o its_o act_n as_o a_o effect_n from_o the_o cause_n as_o a_o distinct_a principle_n from_o another_o as_o a_o pregnant_a daughter_n from_o a_o teem_a mother_n as_o a_o conclusion_n from_o its_o premise_n as_o a_o state_n of_o aversation_n from_o god_n from_o a_o single_a act_n of_o provocation_n 30._o ix_o if_o the_o habit_n have_v not_o a_o irregularity_n in_o it_o distinct_a from_o the_o sin_n than_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o persevere_v in_o holiness_n by_o a_o constant_a regular_a course_n but_o we_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o number_n of_o single_a action_n and_o he_o only_o who_o do_v more_o bad_a than_o good_a action_n shall_v perish_v which_o be_v affirm_v by_o the_o pharisee_n of_o old_a and_o then_o we_o be_v to_o live_v or_o die_v by_o chance_n and_o opportunity_n by_o action_n and_o not_o by_o the_o will_n by_o the_o outward_a and_o not_o by_o the_o inward_a man_n then_o there_o can_v be_v no_o such_o thing_n necessary_a as_o the_o kingdom_n of_o grace_n christ_n empire_n and_o dominion_n in_o the_o soul_n then_o we_o can_v belong_v to_o god_n without_o belong_v to_o his_o kingdom_n and_o we_o may_v be_v in_o god_n though_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v not_o in_o we_o for_o without_o this_o we_o may_v do_v many_o single_a action_n of_o virtue_n and_o it_o may_v happen_v that_o these_o may_v be_v more_o than_o the_o single_a action_n of_o sin_n even_o though_o the_o habit_n and_o affection_n and_o state_n of_o sin_n remain_v now_o if_o the_o case_n may_v be_v so_o as_o in_o the_o particular_a instance_n that_o the_o man_n final_a condition_n shall_v not_o be_v determine_v by_o single_a action_n it_o must_v be_v by_o habit_n and_o state_n and_o principle_n of_o action_n and_o therefore_o these_o must_v have_v in_o they_o a_o proper_a good_a and_o bad_a respective_o by_o which_o the_o man_n shall_v be_v judge_v distinct_a from_o the_o action_n by_o which_o he_o shall_v not_o in_o the_o present_a case_n be_v judge_v all_o which_o consideration_n be_v put_v together_o do_v unanswerable_o put_v we_o upon_o this_o conclusion_n that_o a_o habit_n of_o sin_n be_v that_o state_n of_o evil_n by_o which_o we_o be_v enemy_n to_o god_n and_o slave_n of_o satan_n by_o which_o we_o be_v stranger_n from_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o consign_v to_o the_o portion_n of_o devil_n and_o therefore_o as_o a_o corollory_n of_o all_o we_o be_v bind_v under_o pain_n of_o a_o new_a sin_n to_o rise_v up_o instant_o after_o every_o fall_n to_o repent_v speedy_o for_o every_o sin_n not_o to_o let_v the_o sun_n go_v down_o upon_o our_o wrath_n nor_o rise_v upon_o our_o lust_n nor_o run_v his_o course_n upon_o our_o covetousness_n or_o ambition_n for_o not_o only_o every_o period_n of_o impenitence_n be_v a_o period_n of_o danger_n and_o eternal_a death_n may_v enter_v but_o it_o be_v a_o aggravation_n of_o our_o folly_n a_o continue_v to_o provoke_v god_n a_o further_a aberration_n from_o the_o rule_n a_o departure_n from_o life_n it_o be_v a_o grow_v in_o sin_n a_o progression_n towards_o final_a impenitence_n to_o obduration_n and_o apostasy_n it_o be_v a_o tempt_a god_n and_o a_o despise_n of_o his_o grace_n it_o be_v all_o the_o way_n presumption_n and_o a_o dwell_n in_o sin_n by_o delight_n and_o obedience_n that_o be_v it_o be_v a_o conjugation_n of_o new_a evil_n and_o new_a degree_n of_o evil_a as_o pertinacy_n make_v error_n to_o be_v heresy_n and_o impenitence_n make_v little_a sin_n unite_v and_o become_v deadly_a and_o perseverance_n cause_v good_a to_o be_v crown_v and_o evil_a to_o be_v unpardonable_a so_o be_v the_o habit_n of_o viciousness_n the_o confirmation_n of_o our_o danger_n and_o solennity_n of_o death_n the_o investiture_n and_o security_n of_o our_o horrible_a inheritance_n 31._o the_o sum_n be_v this_o every_o single_a sin_n be_v a_o high_a calamity_n it_o be_v a_o shame_n and_o it_o be_v a_o danger_n in_o one_o instant_a it_o make_v we_o liable_a to_o god_n severe_a anger_n but_o a_o vicious_a habit_n be_v a_o conjugation_n of_o many_o action_n every_o one_o of_o which_o be_v high_o damnable_a and_o beside_o that_o union_n which_o be_v formal_o a_o aggravation_n of_o the_o evil_n there_o be_v superinduce_v upon_o the_o will_n and_o all_o its_o minister_a faculty_n a_o viciousness_n and_o pravity_n which_o make_v evil_a to_o be_v belove_v and_o choose_v and_o god_n to_o be_v hate_v and_o despise_v a_o vicious_a habit_n have_v in_o it_o all_o the_o physical_a metaphysical_a and_o moral_a degree_n of_o which_o it_o can_v be_v capable_a
eo_fw-la usque_fw-la in_o adam_n censetur_fw-la donec_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la recenseatur_fw-la tamdiu_fw-la immunda_fw-la quamdiù_fw-fr recenseatur_fw-la peccatrix_fw-la a._n quia_fw-la immunda_fw-la 40._o recipiens_fw-la ignominiam_fw-la svam_fw-la ex_fw-la carnis_fw-la societate_fw-la and_o this_o which_o he_o here_o call_v a_o reproach_n he_o otherwhere_o call_v a_o imperfection_n or_o a_o shame_n say_v 3._o by_o satan_n man_n at_o first_o be_v circumvent_v and_o therefore_o give_v up_o unto_o death_n and_o from_o thence_o all_o the_o kind_n be_v from_o his_o seed_n infect_v he_o make_v a_o traduction_n of_o his_o sentence_n or_o damnation_n to_o wit_n unto_o death_n which_o be_v his_o condemnation_n and_o therefore_o speak_v of_o the_o woman_n he_o say_v the_o sentence_n remain_v upon_o she_o in_o this_o life_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o guilt_n also_o shall_v remain_v 1._o which_o word_n be_v rough_a and_o hard_a to_o be_v understand_v because_o after_o baptism_n the_o guilt_n do_v not_o remain_v but_o by_o the_o follow_a word_n we_o may_v guess_v that_o he_o mean_v that_o woman_n still_o be_v that_o which_o eve_n be_v even_o snare_n to_o man_n gate_n for_o the_o devil_n to_o enter_v and_o that_o they_o as_o eve_n do_v dare_v and_o can_v prevail_v with_o man_n when_o the_o devil_n by_o any_o other_o mean_n can_v i_o know_v nothing_o else_o that_o he_o say_v of_o this_o article_n 20._o save_v only_o that_o according_a to_o the_o constant_a sense_n of_o antiquity_n he_o affirm_v that_o the_o natural_a faculty_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v not_o impair_v omnia_fw-la naturalia_fw-la animae_fw-la ut_fw-la substantiva_fw-la ejus_fw-la ipsi_fw-la inesse_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la ipsâ_fw-la procedere_fw-la atque_fw-la proficere_fw-la and_o again_o 9_o hominis_fw-la anima_fw-la velut_fw-la surculus_fw-la quidam_fw-la ex_fw-la matrice_n adam_n in_o propaginem_fw-la deducta_fw-la &_o genitalibus_fw-la foeminae_fw-la foveis_fw-la commendata_fw-la cum_fw-la omni_fw-la sua_fw-la paratura_fw-la pullulabi●_n tam_fw-la in_o intellectu_fw-la quam_fw-la in_o sensu_fw-la the_o soul_n like_o a_o sprig_n from_o adam_n derive_v into_o his_o offspring_n and_o put_v into_o the_o bed_n of_o its_o production_n shall_v with_o all_o its_o appendage_n spring_v or_o increase_v both_o in_o sense_n and_o understanding_n and_o that_o there_o be_v liberty_n of_o choice_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o suppose_v liberty_n he_o prove_v against_o martion_n and_o hermogenes_n as_o himself_o affirm_v in_o the_o 21_o chap._n of_o the_o same_o book_n 21._o fidum_fw-la s._n cyprian_n prove_v the_o effect_n of_o baptism_n upon_o all_o and_o consequent_o the_o usefulness_n to_o infant_n argue_v thus_o if_o pardon_v of_o sin_n be_v give_v to_o the_o great_a sinner_n and_o they_o that_o before_o sin_v much_o against_o god_n and_o afterward_o believe_v and_o none_o be_v forbid_v to_o come_v to_o baptism_n and_o grace_n how_o much_o more_o must_v not_o a_o infant_n be_v forbid_v qui_fw-la recens_fw-la natus_fw-la nihil_fw-la peccavit_fw-la nisi_fw-la quod_fw-la secundum_fw-la adam_n carnaliter_fw-la natus_fw-la contagium_fw-la mortis_fw-la antiquae_fw-la primâ_fw-la nativitate_fw-la contraxit_fw-la qui_fw-la ad_fw-la remissam_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la accipiendam_fw-la hoc_fw-la ipso_fw-la facilius_fw-la accedit_fw-la quod_fw-la illi_fw-la remittuntur_fw-la non_fw-la propria_fw-la sed_fw-la aliena_fw-la peccata_fw-la who_o be_v new_o bear_v have_v not_o sin_v at_o all_o but_o only_o be_v bear_v carnal_o of_o adam_n he_o have_v in_o his_o first_o birth_n contract_v the_o contagion_n of_o the_o old_a death_n which_o come_v to_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n the_o more_o easy_o because_o not_o his_o own_o sin_n but_o the_o sin_n of_o another_o be_v forgive_v he_o in_o which_o it_o be_v plain_o affirm_v that_o the_o infant_n be_v innocent_a that_o he_o have_v not_o sin_v himself_o that_o there_o be_v in_o he_o no_o sin_n inherent_a that_o adam_n sin_n therefore_o only_o be_v impute_v that_o all_o the_o effect_n of_o it_o upon_o he_o be_v the_o contagion_n of_o death_n that_o be_v mortality_n and_o its_o affection_n and_o according_a as_o the_o sin_n be_v so_o be_v the_o remission_n they_o be_v the_o infant_n improper_o and_o metonymical_o therefore_o so_o be_v the_o remission_n but_o arnobius_n speak_v yet_o more_o plain_o omne_fw-la peccatum_fw-la cord_n concipitur_fw-la &_o ●re_n consummatur_fw-la arnobius_n hic_fw-la autem_fw-la qui_fw-la nascitur_fw-la sententiam_fw-la adae_fw-la habet_fw-la peccatum_fw-la verò_fw-la suum_fw-la non_fw-la habet_fw-la 50._o he_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o adam_n have_v the_o sentence_n of_o adam_n upon_o he_o but_o not_o the_o sin_n that_o be_v he_o have_v no_o sin_n inherent_a but_o the_o punishment_n inflict_v by_o occasion_n of_o it_o ambros._n the_o author_n of_o the_o short_a commentary_n upon_o the_o epistle_n of_o st._n paul_n attribute_v to_o s._n ambrose_n speak_v so_o much_o that_o some_o have_v use_v the_o authority_n of_o this_o writer_n to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v no_o original_a sin_n as_o sixtus_n senensis_n relate_v his_o word_n be_v these_o mors_fw-la autem_fw-la dissolutio_fw-la corporis_fw-la est_fw-la 136._o cum_fw-la anima_fw-la à_fw-la corpore_fw-la separatur_fw-la est_fw-la &_o alia_fw-la mors_fw-la que_fw-la secunda_fw-la dicitur_fw-la in_fw-la gehenna_fw-la quam_fw-la non_fw-la peccato_fw-la adae_fw-la patimur_fw-la sed_fw-la ejus_fw-la occasione_n propri●●_n peccatis_fw-la acquiritur_fw-la death_n be_v the_o dissolution_n of_o the_o body_n when_o the_o soul_n be_v separate_v from_o it_o there_o be_v also_o another_o death_n in_o hell_n which_o be_v call_v the_o second_o death_n which_o we_o suffer_v not_o from_o adam_n sin_n but_o by_o occasion_n of_o it_o it_o be_v acquire_v by_o our_o own_o sin_n these_o word_n need_v no_o explication_n for_o when_o he_o have_v in_o the_o precedent_a word_n affirm_v that_o we_o all_o sin_v in_o the_o mass_n of_o adam_n this_o follow_a discourse_n state_n the_o question_n right_a and_o declare_v that_o though_o adam_n sin_n be_v impute_v to_o we_o to_o certain_a purpose_n yet_o no_o man_n can_v be_v damn_v to_o the_o second_o death_n for_o it_o it_o be_v a_o testimony_n so_o plain_a for_o the_o main_a part_n of_o my_o affirmation_n in_o this_o article_n that_o as_o there_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n against_o it_o within_o the_o first_o 400_o year_n so_o he_o can_v not_o be_v account_v a_o catholic_n author_n if_o the_o contrary_n have_v be_v the_o sense_n or_o the_o prevail_a opinion_n of_o the_o church_n 22._o to_o these_o i_o shall_v add_v the_o clear_a testimony_n of_o s._n chrysostome_n it_o seem_v to_o have_v in_o it_o no_o small_a question_n rom._n that_o it_o be_v say_v that_o by_o the_o disobedience_n of_o one_o many_o become_v sinner_n for_o sin_v and_o be_v make_v mortal_a it_o be_v not_o unlikely_a that_o they_o which_o spring_n from_o he_o shall_v be_v so_o too_o but_o that_o another_o shall_v be_v make_v a_o sinner_n by_o his_o disobedience_n what_o agreement_n or_o consequent_a i_o beseech_v you_o can_v it_o have_v what_o therefore_o do_v this_o word_n sinner_n in_o this_o place_n signify_v it_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o signify_v the_o same_o that_o liable_a to_o punishment_n guilty_a of_o death_n dos_n signify_v because_o adam_n die_v all_o be_v make_v mortal_a by_o he_o and_o again_o cor._n thou_o say_v what_o shall_v i_o do_v by_o he_o that_o be_v by_z adam_z i_o perish_v no_o not_o for_o he_o for_o haste_n thou_o remain_v without_o sin_n for_o though_o thou_o have_v not_o commit_v the_o same_o sin_n yet_o another_o thou_o have_v and_o in_o the_o 29_o homily_n upon_o the_o same_o epistle_n he_o argue_v thus_o what_o therefore_o tell_v i_o be_v all_o dead_a in_o adam_n by_o the_o death_n of_o sin_n how_o then_o be_v noah_n a_o just_a man_n in_o his_o generation_n how_o be_v abraham_n and_o job_n if_o this_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o body_n the_o sentence_n will_v be_v certain_a 29._o but_o if_o it_o be_v understand_v of_o justice_n and_o sin_n it_o will_v not_o but_o to_o sum_v up_o all_o he_o answer_v the_o great_a argument_n use_v by_o s._n austin_n to_o prove_v infant_n to_o be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o damnation_n and_o sin_n proper_o because_o the_o church_n baptise_n they_o and_o baptism_n be_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n thou_o see_v how_o many_o benefit_n there_o be_v of_o baptism_n neophyt●s_fw-la but_o many_o think_v that_o the_o grace_n of_o baptism_n consist_v only_o in_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n but_o we_o have_v reckon_v 〈◊〉_d honour_n of_o baptism_n for_o this_o cause_n we_o baptize_v infant_n although_o they_o be_v not_o pollute_v with_o sin_n to_o wit_n that_o to_o they_o may_v be_v add_v sanctity_n justice_n adoption_n inheritance_n and_o the_o fraternity_n of_o christ_n divers_n other_o thing_n may_v be_v transcribe_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n out_o of_o s._n chrysostome_n but_o these_o be_v abundant_o sufficient_a to_o prove_v that_o i_o have_v say_v nothing_o new_a in_o this_o article_n theodoret_n do_v very_o often_o consent_v with_o s._n
mercy_n give_v we_o pardon_v and_o thy_o holy_a spirit_n give_v we_o perseverance_n and_o thy_o infinite_a favour_n bring_v we_o to_o glory_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n amen_o chap._n x._o of_o ecclesiastical_a penance_n or_o the_o fruit_n of_o repentance_n sect_n i._o 1._o the_o fruit_n of_o repentance_n be_v the_o action_n of_o spiritual_a life_n and_o signify_v proper_o all_o that_o piety_n and_o obedience_n which_o we_o pay_v to_o god_n in_o the_o day_n of_o our_o return_n after_o we_o have_v begin_v to_o follow_v sober_a counsel_n for_o since_o all_o the_o duty_n of_o a_o christian_a be_v a_o state_n of_o repentance_n that_o be_v of_o contention_n against_o sin_n and_o the_o part_n and_o proper_a period_n of_o victory_n and_o repentance_n which_o include_v the_o faith_n of_o a_o christian_a be_v but_o another_o word_n to_o express_v the_o same_o grace_n or_o mercy_n of_o the_o evangelical_n covenant_n it_o follow_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o christian_a and_o a_o mean_n to_o possess_v that_o grace_n be_v in_o some_o sense_n or_o other_o a_o repentance_n or_o the_o fruit_n of_o god_n mercy_n and_o our_o endeavour_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n s._n john_n the_o baptist_n mean_v it_o say_v bring_v forth_o therefore_o fruit_n meet_v for_o repentance_n that_o be_v since_o now_o the_o great_a expectation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v to_o be_v satisfy_v and_o the_o lord_n be_v christ_n will_v open_v the_o gate_n of_o mercy_n and_o give_v repentance_n to_o the_o world_n see_v that_o you_o live_v according_o in_o the_o faith_n and_o obedience_n of_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ._n that_o do_v in_o the_o event_n of_o thing_n prove_v to_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o that_o sermon_n 2._o but_o although_o all_o the_o part_n of_o holy_a life_n be_v fruit_n of_o repentance_n when_o it_o be_v take_v for_o the_o state_n of_o favour_n publish_v by_o the_o gospel_n yet_o when_o repentance_n be_v a_o particular_a duty_n or_o virtue_n the_o integral_a part_n of_o holy_a life_n be_v also_o constituent_a part_n of_o repentance_n and_o then_o by_o the_o fruit_n of_o repentance_n must_v be_v mean_v the_o less_o necessary_a but_o very_o useful_a effect_n and_o ministery_n of_o repentance_n which_o be_v signification_n and_o exercise_n of_o the_o main_a duty_n and_o these_o be_v sorrow_n for_o sin_n common_o call_v contrition_n confession_n of_o they_o and_o satisfaction_n by_o which_o ought_v to_o be_v mean_v a_o oppose_a a_o contrary_a act_n of_o virtue_n to_o the_o precedent_a act_n of_o sin_n and_o a_o punish_v of_o ourselves_o out_o of_o sorrow_n and_o indignation_n for_o our_o folly_n and_o this_o be_v best_a do_v by_o all_o those_o act_n of_o religion_n by_o which_o god_n be_v proper_o appease_v and_o sin_n be_v destroy_v that_o be_v by_o those_o act_n which_o signify_v our_o love_n to_o god_n and_o our_o hatred_n to_o sin_n such_o as_o be_v prayer_n and_o alm_n and_o forgive_a injury_n and_o punish_v ourselves_o that_o be_v a_o forgive_a every_o one_o but_o ourselves_o 3._o many_o of_o these_o i_o say_v be_v not_o essential_a part_n of_o repentance_n without_o the_o actual_a exercise_n of_o which_o no_o man_n in_o any_o case_n can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v true_o penitent_a for_o the_o constituent_a part_n of_o repentance_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o essential_a part_n of_o obedience_n to_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n that_o be_v direct_v abstinence_n from_o evil_n and_o do_v what_o be_v in_o the_o precept_n but_o they_o be_v fruit_n and_o signification_n exercise_n and_o bless_a production_n of_o repentance_n useful_a to_o excellent_a purpose_n of_o it_o and_o such_o from_o which_o a_o man_n can_v be_v excuse_v but_o by_o great_a accident_n and_o rare_a contingency_n to_o visit_v prisoner_n and_o to_o redeem_v captive_n and_o to_o instruct_v the_o ignorant_a be_v act_n of_o charity_n but_o he_o that_o do_v not_o act_v these_o special_a instance_n be_v not_o always_o to_o be_v condemn_v for_o want_v of_o charity_n because_o by_o other_o act_n of_o grace_n he_o may_v signify_v and_o exercise_v his_o duty_n he_o only_o that_o refuse_v any_o instance_n because_o the_o grace_n be_v not_o operative_a he_o only_o be_v the_o uncharitable_a but_o to_o the_o particular_n he_o can_v be_v determine_v only_o by_o something_o from_o without_o but_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o the_o grace_n itself_o that_o it_o work_v where_o it_o can_v or_o where_o it_o be_v prudent_o choose_v so_o it_o be_v in_o these_o fruit_n of_o repentance_n he_o that_o out_o of_o hatred_n to_o sin_n abstain_v from_o it_o and_o out_o of_o love_n to_o god_n endeavour_n to_o keep_v his_o commandment_n he_o be_v a_o true_a penitent_a though_o he_o never_o lie_v upon_o the_o ground_n or_o spend_v whole_a night_n in_o prayer_n or_o make_v himself_o sick_a with_o fast_v but_o he_o that_o in_o all_o circumstance_n refuse_v any_o or_o all_o of_o these_o and_o have_v not_o hatred_n enough_o against_o his_o sin_n to_o punish_v it_o in_o himself_o when_o to_o do_v so_o may_v accidental_o be_v necessary_a or_o enjoin_v he_o have_v cause_n to_o suspect_v himself_o not_o to_o be_v a_o true_a penitent_a 4._o no_o one_o of_o these_o be_v necessary_a in_o the_o special_a instance_n except_o those_o which_o be_v distinct_o and_o upon_o their_o own_o account_n under_o another_o precept_n as_o prayer_n and_o forgive_a injury_n and_o self-affliction_n in_o general_n and_o confession_n but_o those_o which_o be_v only_o apt_a ministery_n to_o the_o grace_n which_o can_v be_v minister_v unto_o equal_o by_o other_o instance_n those_o be_v leave_v to_o the_o choice_n of_o every_o one_o or_o to_o be_v determine_v or_o bind_v upon_o we_o by_o accident_n and_o by_o the_o church_n but_o every_o one_o of_o the_o particular_n have_v in_o it_o something_o of_o special_a consideration_n sect_n ii_o of_o contrition_n or_o godly_a sorrow_n 5._o in_o all_o repentance_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o we_o understand_v some_o sorrow_n ingredient_n or_o appendant_a or_o beginning_n to_o repent_v be_v to_o leave_v a_o sin_n which_o because_o it_o must_v have_v a_o cause_n to_o effect_v it_o can_v begin_v no_o where_o but_o where_o the_o sin_n be_v for_o some_o reason_n or_o other_o dislike_v that_o be_v because_o it_o do_v a_o mischief_n it_o be_v enough_o to_o leave_v it_o that_o we_o know_v it_o will_v ruin_v we_o if_o we_o abide_v in_o it_o but_o that_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o make_v we_o grieve_v for_o it_o when_o it_o be_v past_a and_o quit_v for_o if_o we_o believe_v that_o as_o soon_o as_o ever_o we_o repent_v of_o it_o we_o shall_v be_v accept_v to_o pardon_v and_o that_o infallible_o and_o that_o be_v once_o forsake_v it_o do_v not_o and_o shall_v not_o prejudice_v we_o he_o that_o consider_v this_o and_o remember_v it_o be_v pleasant_a to_o he_o will_v scarce_o find_v cause_n enough_o to_o be_v sorrowful_a for_o it_o neither_o be_v it_o enough_o to_o say_v he_o must_v grieve_v for_o it_o or_o else_o it_o will_v do_v he_o mischief_n for_o this_o be_v not_o true_a for_o how_o can_v sorrow_n prevent_v the_o mischief_n when_o the_o sorrow_n of_o itself_o be_v not_o a_o essential_a duty_n or_o if_o it_o be_v so_o in_o itself_o yet_o by_o accident_n it_o become_v not_o to_o be_v so_o for_o by_o be_v unreasonable_a and_o impossible_a it_o become_v also_o not_o necessary_a not_o a_o duty_n to_o be_v sorrowful_a be_v not_o always_o in_o our_o power_n any_o more_o than_o to_o be_v merry_a and_o both_o of_o they_o be_v the_o natural_a product_n of_o their_o own_o object_n and_o of_o nothing_o else_o and_o than_o if_o sin_n do_v we_o pleasure_n at_o first_o and_o at_o last_o no_o mischief_n to_o the_o penitent_a to_o bid_v they_o be_v sorrowful_a lest_o it_o shall_v do_v mischief_n be_v as_o improper_a a_o remedy_n as_o if_o we_o be_v command_v to_o be_v hungry_a to_o prevent_v be_v beat_v he_o that_o feel_v nothing_o but_o the_o pleasure_n of_o sin_n and_o be_v now_o tell_v he_o shall_v feel_v none_o of_o its_o evil_n and_o that_o it_o can_v no_o more_o hurt_v he_o when_o it_o be_v forsake_v than_o a_o bee_n when_o the_o sting_n be_v out_o if_o he_o be_v command_v to_o grieve_v may_v just_o return_v in_o answer_n that_o as_o yet_o he_o perceive_v no_o cause_n 6._o if_o it_o be_v tell_v he_o it_o be_v cause_n enough_o to_o grieve_v that_o he_o have_v offend_v god_n who_o can_v punish_v he_o with_o sad_a unsufferable_a and_o eternal_a torment_n this_o be_v very_o true_a but_o if_o god_n be_v not_o angry_a with_o he_o and_o he_o be_v tell_v that_o god_n will_v not_o punish_v he_o for_o the_o sin_n he_o repent_v of_o then_o to_o grieve_v for_o have_v offend_v god_n be_v so_o metaphysical_a and_o abstract_v a_o speculation_n that_o there_o must_v be_v something_o else_o in_o
my_o life_n confute_v he_o and_o though_o i_o will_v not_o contend_v with_o he_o yet_o i_o will_v die_v with_o he_o in_o behalf_n of_o the_o church_n if_o god_n shall_v call_v i_o but_o for_o other_o little_a thing_n and_o trifle_a arrest_n and_o little_a murmur_n i_o value_v none_o of_o it_o quid_fw-la verum_fw-la atque_fw-la decent_a curo_fw-la &_o rogo_fw-la &_o omnis_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la sum_fw-la condo_n &_o compono_fw-la quod_fw-la mox_fw-la depromere_fw-la possim_fw-la nullius_fw-la addictus_fw-la jurare_fw-la in_o verba_fw-la magistri_fw-la quo_fw-la i_o cunque_fw-la rapit_fw-la tempestas_fw-la deferor_fw-la i_o can_v translate_v these_o also_o into_o bad_a english_a verse_n as_o i_o do_v the_o other_o but_o that_o now_o i_o be_o earnest_a for_o my_o liberty_n i_o will_v not_o so_o much_o as_o confine_v myself_o to_o the_o measure_n of_o foot_n but_o in_o plain_a english_a i_o mean_v by_o rehearse_v these_o latin_a verse_n that_o although_o i_o love_v every_o man_n and_o value_v worthy_a person_n in_o proportion_n to_o their_o labour_n and_o ability_n whereby_o they_o can_v and_o do_v serve_v god_n and_o god_n church_n yet_o i_o inquire_v for_o what_o be_v fit_v not_o what_o be_v please_v i_o search_v after_o way_n to_o advantage_n soul_n not_o to_o comply_v with_o humour_n and_o sect_n and_o interest_n and_o i_o be_o tie_v to_o no_o man_n private_a opinion_n any_o more_o than_o he_o be_v to_o i_o if_o he_o will_v bring_v scripture_n and_o right_a reason_n from_o any_o topic_a he_o may_v govern_v i_o and_o persuade_v i_o else_o i_o be_o free_a as_o he_o be_v but_o i_o hope_v i_o be_o beforehand_o with_o he_o in_o this_o question_n but_o one_o thing_n more_o i_o be_o willing_a to_o add_v by_o the_o confession_n of_o all_o the_o school_n of_o learning_n it_o be_v teach_v that_o baptism_n have_v infallible_o all_o that_o effect_n upon_o infant_n which_o god_n design_v and_o the_o church_n intend_v to_o they_o in_o the_o ministry_n of_o that_o sacrament_n because_o infant_n can_v ponere_fw-la obicem_fw-la they_o can_v impede_fw-la the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o they_o hinder_v not_o the_o effect_n of_o god_n spirit_n now_o all_o hindrance_n of_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v sin_n and_o if_o sin_n before_o the_o ministration_n be_v not_o moral_o rescind_v it_o remain_v and_o remain_v be_v a_o disposition_n contrary_n to_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o sacrament_n every_o inherent_a sin_n be_v the_o obex_fw-la bar_v the_o gate_n that_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v not_o enter_v since_o therefore_o infant_n do_v not_o bar_v the_o gate_n do_v not_o hinder_v the_o effect_n of_o the_o sacrament_n it_o follow_v they_o have_v no_o sin_n inherent_a in_o they_o but_o impute_v only_o if_o it_o be_v reply_v that_o original_a sin_n though_o it_o be_v proper_o a_o sin_n and_o real_o inherent_a yet_o it_o do_v not_o hinder_v the_o effect_n of_o the_o sacrament_n i_o answer_v than_o it_o follow_v that_o original_a sin_n be_v of_o less_o malignity_n than_o the_o least_o actual_a sin_n in_o the_o world_n and_o if_o so_o then_o either_o by_o it_o no_o man_n be_v hate_v by_o god_n to_o eternal_a damnation_n no_o man_n be_v by_o it_o a_o enemy_n of_o god_n a_o son_n of_o wrath_n a_o heir_n of_o perdition_n or_o if_o he_o be_v then_o at_o the_o same_o time_n he_o may_v be_v actual_o hate_v by_o god_n and_o yet_o worthy_o dispose_v for_o receive_v the_o grace_n and_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n and_o that_o sin_n which_o of_o all_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v the_o great_a and_o of_o most_o universal_a and_o parmanent_a mischief_n shall_v do_v the_o least_o harm_n and_o be_v less_o oppose_v to_o god_n grace_n and_o indispose_v a_o man_n less_o than_o a_o single_a wanton_a thought_n or_o the_o first_o consent_n to_o a_o forbid_a action_n which_o he_o that_o can_v believe_v be_v very_o much_o in_o love_n with_o his_o own_o proposition_n and_o be_v content_a to_o believe_v it_o upon_o any_o term_n i_o end_v with_o the_o word_n of_o lucretius_n desine_fw-la quapropter_fw-la novitate_fw-la exterritus_fw-la ipsâ_fw-la expuere_fw-la ex_fw-la animo_fw-la rationem_fw-la sed_fw-la magis_fw-la acri_fw-la judicio_fw-la prepend_v &_o si_fw-la tibi_fw-la vera_fw-la videtur_fw-la deed_n manus_fw-la aut_fw-la si_fw-la falsa_fw-la est_fw-la accingere_fw-la contrá_fw-fr fear_v not_o to_o own_v what_o be_v say_v because_o it_o be_v new_a weigh_v well_o and_o wise_o if_o the_o thing_n be_v true_a truth_n and_o not_o conquest_n be_v the_o best_a reward_n against_o falsehood_n only_o stand_v upon_o thy_o guard_n madam_n i_o humble_o beg_v you_o will_v be_v please_v to_o entertain_v these_o paper_n not_o only_o as_o a_o testimony_n of_o my_o zeal_n for_o truth_n and_o peace_n below_o and_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n above_o but_o also_o of_o my_o readiness_n to_o seize_v upon_o every_o occasion_n whereby_o i_o may_v express_v myself_o to_o be_v your_o most_o oblige_a and_o most_o humble_a servant_n in_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o h._n jesus_n jer_n taylor_n a_o answer_n to_o a_o letter_n write_v by_o the_o r._n r._n the_o lord_n bishop_n of_o rochester_n concern_v the_o chapter_n of_o original_a sin_n in_o the_o vnum_fw-la necessarium_fw-la r._n r._n father_n and_o my_o good_a lord_n your_o lordship_n letter_n dated_n july_n 28._o i_o receive_v not_o till_o septemb_n 11._o it_o seem_v r._n royston_n detain_v it_o in_o his_o hand_n suppose_v it_o can_v not_o come_v safe_o to_o i_o while_o i_o remain_v a_o prisoner_n now_o in_o chepstow-castle_n but_o i_o now_o have_v that_o liberty_n that_o i_o can_v receive_v any_o letter_n and_o send_v any_o for_o the_o gentleman_n under_o who_o custody_n i_o be_o as_o they_o be_v careful_a of_o their_o charge_n so_o they_o be_v civil_a to_o my_o person_n it_o be_v necessary_a i_o shall_v tell_v this_o to_o your_o lordship_n that_o i_o may_v not_o be_v under_o a_o suspicion_n of_o neglect_v to_o give_v account_n in_o those_o particular_n which_o with_o so_o much_o prudence_n and_o charity_n you_o be_v please_v to_o represent_v in_o your_o letter_n concern_v my_o discourse_n of_o original_a sin_n my_o lord_n in_o all_o your_o exception_n i_o can_v but_o observe_v your_o candour_n and_o your_o paternal_a care_n concern_v i_o for_o when_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o doctrine_n but_o your_o great_a reason_n do_v easy_o see_v the_o justice_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o it_o and_o i_o be_o persuade_v can_v have_v teach_v i_o to_o have_v say_v many_o more_o material_a thing_n in_o confirmation_n of_o what_o i_o have_v teach_v yet_o so_o careful_a be_v your_o charity_n of_o i_o that_o you_o will_v not_o omit_v to_o represent_v to_o my_o consideration_n what_o may_v be_v say_v by_o captious_a and_o weak_a person_n or_o by_o the_o more_o wise_a and_o pious_a who_o be_v of_o a_o different_a judgement_n but_o my_o lord_n first_o you_o be_v please_v to_o note_v that_o this_o discourse_n run_v not_o in_o the_o ordinary_a channel_n true_a for_o if_o it_o do_v it_o must_v nurse_v the_o popular_a error_n but_o when_o the_o disease_n be_v epidemical_a as_o it_o be_v so_o much_o the_o worse_o so_o the_o extraordinary_a remedy_n must_v be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o better_a and_o if_o there_o be_v in_o it_o some_o thing_n hard_a to_o be_v understand_v as_o it_o be_v the_o fate_n of_o s._n paul_n epistle_n as_o your_o lordship_n note_v out_o of_o s._n peter_n yet_o this_o difficulty_n of_o understanding_n proceed_v not_o from_o the_o thing_n itself_o nor_o from_o the_o manner_n of_o handle_v it_o but_o from_o the_o indisposition_n and_o prepossession_n of_o man_n mind_n to_o the_o contrary_a who_o be_v angry_a when_o they_o be_v tell_v that_o they_o have_v be_v deceive_v for_o it_o be_v usual_a with_o man_n to_o be_v more_o displease_v when_o they_o be_v tell_v they_o be_v in_o error_n than_o to_o be_v please_v with_o they_o who_o offer_v to_o lead_v they_o out_o of_o it_o but_o your_o lordship_n do_v with_o great_a advantage_n represent_v a_o objection_n of_o some_o captious_a person_n which_o relate_v not_o to_o the_o material_a part_n of_o the_o question_n but_o to_o the_o rule_n of_o art_n if_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o original_a sin_n transmit_v from_o adam_n to_o his_o posterity_n than_o all_o that_o six_o chapter_n be_v a_o strife_n about_o a_o shadow_n a_o non_fw-la ens_fw-la ans._n it_o be_v true_a my_o lord_n the_o question_n as_o it_o be_v usual_o handle_v be_v so_o for_o when_o the_o franciscan_a and_o dominican_n do_v eternal_o dispute_v about_o the_o conception_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n whether_o it_o be_v with_o or_o without_o original_a sin_n mean_v by_o way_n of_o grace_n and_o special_a exemption_n this_o be_v de_fw-fr non_fw-fr ente_fw-la for_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o any_o such_o
this_o may_v be_v well_o suppose_v without_o infer_v their_o suffering_n the_o pain_n of_o hell_n but_o this_o sentence_n of_o they_o i_o admit_v and_o explicate_v with_o some_o little_a difference_n of_o expression_n for_o so_o far_o i_o admit_v this_o pain_n of_o loss_n or_o rather_o a_o deficiency_n from_o go_v to_o heaven_n to_o be_v the_o consequence_n of_o adam_n sin_n that_o by_o it_o we_o be_v leave_v in_o meris_fw-la naturalibus_fw-la can_v never_o by_o these_o strength_n alone_o have_v go_v to_o heaven_n now_o whereas_o your_o lordship_n in_o behalf_n of_o those_o who_o you_o suppose_v may_v be_v captious_a be_v please_v to_o argue_v that_o as_o loss_n of_o sight_n or_o eye_n infer_v a_o state_n of_o darkness_n or_o blindness_n so_o the_o loss_n of_o heaven_n infer_v hell_n and_o if_o infant_n go_v not_o to_o heaven_n in_o that_o state_n whither_o can_v they_o go_v but_o to_o hell_n and_o that_o be_v damnation_n in_o the_o great_a sense_n i_o grant_v it_o that_o if_o in_o the_o event_n of_o thing_n they_o do_v not_o go_v to_o heaven_n as_o thing_n be_v now_o order_v it_o be_v but_o too_o likely_a that_o they_o go_v to_o hell_n but_o i_o add_v that_o as_o all_o darkness_n do_v not_o infer_v horror_n and_o distraction_n of_o mind_n or_o fearful_a apparition_n and_o phantasm_n so_o neither_o do_v all_o hell_n or_o state_n in_o hell_n infer_v all_o those_o torment_n which_o the_o schoolman_n signify_v by_o a_o poenase●sus_n for_o i_o speak_v now_o in_o pursuance_n of_o their_o way_n so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o a_o three_o place_n but_o it_o conclude_v only_o that_o in_o the_o state_n of_o separation_n from_o god_n presence_n there_o be_v a_o great_a variety_n of_o degree_n and_o kind_n of_o evil_a and_o every_o one_o be_v not_o the_o extreme_a and_o yet_o by_o the_o way_n let_v i_o observe_v that_o gregory_n nazianzen_n and_o nicetas_n teach_v that_o there_o be_v a_o three_o place_n for_o infant_n and_o heathen_n and_o irenaeus_n affirm_v that_o the_o evil_n of_o hell_n be_v not_o eternal_a to_o all_o but_o to_o the_o devil_n only_o and_o the_o great_a criminal_o but_o neither_o they_o nor_o we_o nor_o any_o man_n else_o can_v tell_v whether_o hell_n be_v a_o place_n or_o no._n it_o be_v a_o state_n of_o evil_n but_o whether_o all_o the_o damn_a be_v in_o one_o or_o in_o twenty_o place_n we_o can_v tell_v but_o i_o have_v no_o need_n to_o make_v use_n of_o any_o of_o this_o for_o when_o i_o affirm_v that_o infant_n be_v by_o adam_n reduce_v and_o leave_v to_o their_o mere_a natural_a state_n fall_v short_a of_o heaven_n i_o do_v not_o say_v they_o can_v go_v to_o heaven_n at_o all_o but_o they_o can_v go_v thither_o by_o their_o natural_a power_n they_o can_v without_o a_o new_a grace_n and_o favour_n go_v to_o heaven_n but_o than_o it_o can_v present_o be_v infer_v that_o therefore_o they_o go_v to_o hell_n but_o this_o aught_o to_o be_v infer_v which_o indeed_o be_v the_o real_a consequent_a of_o it_o therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o god_n grace_n shall_v supply_v this_o defect_n if_o god_n intend_v heaven_n to_o they_o at_o all_o and_o because_o nature_n can_v god_n send_v a_o saviour_n by_o who_o it_o be_v effect_v but_o if_o it_o be_v ask_v what_o if_o this_o grace_n have_v not_o come_v and_o that_o it_o be_v say_v that_o without_o god_n grace_n they_o must_v have_v go_v to_o hell_n because_o without_o it_o they_o can_v not_o go_v to_o heaven_n i_o answer_v that_o we_o know_v how_o it_o be_v now_o that_o god_n in_o his_o goodness_n have_v make_v provision_n for_o they_o but_o if_o he_o have_v not_o make_v such_o provision_n what_o will_v have_v be_v we_o know_v not_o any_o more_o than_o we_o know_v what_o will_v have_v follow_v if_o adam_n have_v not_o sin_v where_o he_o shall_v have_v live_v and_o how_o long_o and_o in_o what_o circumstance_n the_o posterity_n shall_v have_v be_v provide_v for_o in_o all_o their_o possible_a contingency_n but_o yet_o this_o i_o know_v that_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o if_o without_o this_o grace_n we_o can_v not_o have_v go_v to_o heaven_n that_o therefore_o we_o must_v have_v go_v to_o hell_n for_o although_o the_o first_o be_v ordinary_o impossible_a yet_o the_o second_o be_v absolute_o unjust_a and_o against_o god_n goodness_n and_o therefore_o more_o impossible_a but_o because_o the_o first_o can_v not_o be_v do_v by_o nature_n god_n be_v please_v to_o promise_v and_o to_o give_v his_o grace_n that_o he_o may_v bring_v we_o to_o that_o state_n whither_o he_o have_v design_v we_o that_o be_v to_o a_o supernatural_a felicity_n if_o adam_n have_v not_o fall_v yet_o heaven_n have_v not_o be_v a_o natural_a consequent_a of_o his_o obedience_n but_o a_o gracious_a it_o have_v be_v a_o gift_n still_o and_o of_o adam_n though_o he_o have_v persist_v in_o innocence_n it_o be_v true_a to_o say_v that_o without_o god_n grace_n that_o be_v by_o the_o mere_a force_n of_o nature_n he_o can_v never_o have_v arrive_v to_o a_o supernatural_a state_n that_o be_v to_o the_o joy_n of_o heaven_n and_o yet_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o if_o he_o have_v remain_v in_o innocence_n he_o must_v have_v go_v to_o hell_n just_o so_o it_o be_v in_o infant_n hell_n be_v not_o make_v for_o man_n but_o for_o devil_n and_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v something_o beside_o mere_a nature_n that_o can_v bear_v any_o man_n thither_o mere_a nature_n go_v neither_o to_o heaven_n nor_o hell_n so_o that_o when_o i_o say_v infant_n natural_o can_v go_v to_o heaven_n and_o that_o this_o be_v a_o punishment_n of_o adam_n sin_n he_o be_v for_o it_o punish_v with_o a_o loss_n of_o his_o gracious_a condition_n and_o devolve_v to_o the_o state_n of_o nature_n and_o we_o by_o he_o leave_v so_o my_o meaning_n be_v that_o this_o damnation_n which_o be_v of_o our_o nature_n be_v but_o negative_a that_o be_v as_o a_o consequent_a of_o our_o patrialous_a sin_n our_o nature_n be_v leave_v imperfect_a and_o deficient_a in_o order_n to_o a_o supernatural_a end_n which_o the_o schoolman_n call_v a_o poena_fw-la damni_fw-la but_o improper_o they_o indeed_o think_v it_o may_v be_v a_o real_a event_n and_o final_a condition_n of_o person_n as_o well_o as_o thing_n but_o i_o affirm_v it_o be_v a_o evil_a effect_n of_o adam_n sin_n but_o in_o the_o event_n of_o thing_n it_o become_v to_o the_o person_n the_o way_n to_o a_o new_a grace_n and_o have_v no_o other_o event_n as_o to_o heaven_n and_o hell_n direct_o and_o immediate_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n and_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n i_o understand_v the_o word_n damnation_n in_o the_o nine_o article_n but_o the_o word_n damnation_n may_v very_o well_o true_o and_o sufficient_o signify_v all_o the_o purpose_n of_o the_o article_n if_o it_o be_v take_v only_o for_o the_o effect_n of_o that_o sentence_n which_o be_v inflict_v upon_o adam_n and_o descend_v on_o his_o posterity_n that_o be_v for_o condemnation_n to_o death_n and_o the_o evil_n of_o mortality_n so_o the_o word_n be_v use_v by_o s._n paul_n 1_o cor._n 11.29_o he_o that_o eat_v and_o drink_v unworthy_o eat_v and_o drink_v damnation_n to_o himself_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v the_o word_n but_o that_o it_o do_v particular_o signify_v temporal_a death_n and_o evil_n appear_v by_o the_o instance_n of_o probation_n in_o the_o next_o word_n for_o for_o this_o cause_n some_o be_v weak_a among_o you_o some_o be_v sick_a and_o some_o be_v fall_v asleep_o this_o also_o in_o the_o article_n original_a sin_n deserve_v damnation_n that_o be_v it_o just_o bring_v in_o the_o angry_a sentence_n of_o god_n upon_o man_n it_o bring_v he_o to_o death_n and_o deserve_v it_o it_o bring_v it_o upon_o we_o and_o deserve_v it_o too_o i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o we_o by_o that_o sin_n deserve_v that_o death_n neither_o can_v death_n be_v proper_o a_o punishment_n of_o we_o till_o we_o superadd_a some_o evil_n of_o our_o own_o yet_o adam_n sin_n deserve_v it_o so_o that_o it_o be_v just_o leave_v to_o fall_v upon_o we_o we_o as_o a_o consequent_a and_o punishment_n of_o his_o sin_n be_v reduce_v to_o our_o natural_a portion_n in_o odiosis_n quod_fw-la minimum_fw-la est_fw-la sequimur_fw-la the_o lesser_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n be_v certain_o agreeable_a to_o truth_n and_o reason_n and_o it_o be_v good_a we_o use_v the_o word_n in_o that_o sense_n which_o may_v best_o warrant_v her_o doctrine_n especial_o for_o that_o use_n of_o the_o word_n have_v the_o precedent_n of_o scripture_n i_o be_o confirm_v in_o this_o interpretation_n by_o the_o second_o section_n of_o the_o article_n viz._n of_o the_o remanency_n of_o concupiscence_n or_o original_a sin_n in_o the_o regenerate_v all_o the_o sinfulness_n of_o
act_n of_o their_o own_o promote_v the_o hope_n of_o their_o own_o salvation_n which_o man_n of_o reason_n and_o choice_n may_v by_o act_n of_o virtue_n and_o election_n it_o be_v more_o agreeable_a to_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n the_o honour_n and_o excellencey_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o its_o institution_n that_o it_o shall_v in_o infant_n supply_v the_o want_n of_o humane_a act_n and_o free_a obedience_n which_o the_o very_a thing_n itself_o seem_v to_o say_v it_o do_v because_o its_o effect_n be_v from_o god_n and_o require_v nothing_o on_o man_n part_n but_o that_o its_o efficacy_n be_v not_o hinder_v and_o then_o in_o infant_n the_o disposition_n be_v equal_a and_o the_o necessity_n more_o they_o can_v ponere_fw-la obicem_fw-la and_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n can_v do_v other_o act_n which_o without_o the_o sacrament_n do_v advantage_n towards_o our_o hope_n of_o heaven_n and_o therefore_o have_v more_o need_n to_o be_v supply_v by_o a_o act_n and_o a_o institution_n divine_a and_o supernatural_a 7._o and_o this_o be_v not_o only_o necessary_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o condition_n of_o infant_n incapacity_n to_o do_v act_n of_o grace_n but_o also_o in_o obedience_n to_o divine_a precept_n for_o christ_n make_v a_o law_n who_o sanction_n be_v with_o a_o exclusive_a negative_a to_o they_o that_o be_v not_o baptize_v unless_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v of_o water_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n he_o shall_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n if_o then_o infant_n have_v a_o capacity_n of_o be_v coheir_n with_o christ_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o his_o father_n as_o christ_n affirm_v they_o have_v by_o say_v for_o of_o such_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n then_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v bring_v to_o baptism_n there_o be_v a_o absolute_a exclusion_n of_o all_o person_n unbaptise_v and_o all_o person_n not_o spiritual_a from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n 8._o but_o indeed_o it_o be_v a_o destruction_n of_o all_o the_o hope_n and_o happiness_n of_o infant_n a_o deny_v to_o they_o a_o exemption_n from_o the_o final_a condition_n of_o beast_n and_o insectil_n or_o else_o a_o design_v of_o they_o to_o a_o worse_a misery_n to_o say_v that_o god_n have_v not_o appoint_v some_o external_a or_o internal_a mean_n of_o bring_v they_o to_o a_o eternal_a happiness_n internal_a they_o have_v none_o for_o grace_n be_v a_o improvement_n and_o heighten_v the_o faculty_n of_o nature_n in_o order_n to_o a_o heighten_v and_o supernatural_a end_n grace_n have_v no_o influence_n or_o efficacy_n upon_o their_o faculty_n who_o can_v do_v no_o natural_a act_n of_o understanding_n and_o if_o there_o be_v no_o external_a mean_n than_o they_o be_v destitute_a of_o all_o hope_n and_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n 9_o but_o thanks_o be_v to_o god_n he_o have_v provide_v better_a and_o tell_v we_o according_o for_o he_o have_v make_v a_o promise_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o infant_n as_o well_o as_o to_o man_n 39_o the_o promise_n be_v make_v to_o you_o and_o to_o your_o child_n say_v s._n peter_n the_o promise_n of_o the_o father_n the_o promise_n that_o he_o will_v send_v the_o holy_a ghost_n now_o if_o you_o ask_v how_o this_o promise_n shall_v be_v convey_v to_o our_o child_n we_o have_v a_o express_v out_o of_o the_o same_o sermon_n of_o s._n peter_n be_v baptize_v and_o you_o shall_v receive_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o that_o therefore_o because_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v promise_v and_o baptism_n be_v the_o mean_n of_o receive_v the_o promise_n therefore_o baptism_n pertain_v to_o they_o to_o who_o the_o promise_n which_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o baptism_n do_v appertain_v and_o that_o we_o may_v not_o think_v this_o argument_n be_v fallible_a or_o of_o humane_a collection_n observe_v that_o it_o be_v the_o argument_n of_o the_o same_o apostle_n in_o express_a term_n for_o in_o the_o case_n of_o cornelius_n and_o his_o family_n he_o justify_v his_o proceed_n by_o this_o very_a medium_fw-la shall_v we_o deny_v baptism_n to_o they_o who_o have_v receive_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o well_o as_o we_o which_o discourse_n if_o it_o be_v reduce_v to_o form_n of_o argument_n say_v this_o they_o that_o be_v capable_a of_o the_o same_o grace_n be_v receptive_a of_o the_o same_o sign_n but_o then_o to_o make_v the_o syllogism_n up_o with_o a_o assumption_n proper_a to_o our_o present_a purpose_n infant_n be_v capable_a of_o the_o same_o grace_n that_o be_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o the_o promise_n be_v make_v to_o our_o child_n as_o well_o as_o to_o we_o and_o s._n paul_n say_v the_o child_n of_o believe_a parent_n be_v holy_a and_o therefore_o have_v the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o holiness_n and_o sanctification_n therefore_o they_o be_v to_o receive_v the_o sign_n and_o the_o seal_n of_o it_o that_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n 10._o and_o indeed_o since_o god_n enter_v a_o covenant_n with_o the_o jew_n which_o do_v also_o actual_o involve_v their_o child_n and_o give_v they_o a_o sign_n to_o establish_v the_o covenant_n and_o its_o appendant_a promise_n either_o god_n do_v not_o so_o much_o love_v the_o church_n as_o he_o do_v the_o synagogue_n and_o the_o mercy_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v more_o restrain_v than_o the_o mercy_n of_o the_o law_n god_n have_v make_v a_o covenant_n with_o the_o infant_n of_o israel_n and_o none_o with_o the_o child_n of_o christian_a parent_n or_o if_o he_o have_v yet_o we_o want_v the_o comfort_n of_o its_o consignation_n and_o unless_o our_o child_n be_v to_o be_v baptize_v and_o so_o entitle_v to_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n as_o the_o jewish_a babe_n be_v by_o circumcision_n this_o mercy_n which_o appertain_v to_o infant_n be_v so_o secret_a and_o undeclare_v and_o unconsign_v that_o we_o want_v much_o of_o that_o mercy_n and_o outward_a testimony_n which_o give_v they_o comfort_n and_o assurance_n 11._o and_o in_o proportion_n to_o these_o precept_n and_o revelation_n be_v the_o practice_n apostolical_a for_o they_o to_o who_o christ_n give_v in_o precept_n to_o make_v disciple_n all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o and_o know_v that_o nation_n without_o child_n never_o be_v and_o that_o therefore_o they_o be_v passive_o concern_v in_o that_o commission_n baptize_v whole_a family_n particular_o that_o of_o stephanas_n and_o divers_a other_o in_o which_o it_o be_v more_o than_o probable_a there_o be_v some_o minor_n if_o not_o suck_v babe_n and_o this_o practice_n do_v descend_v upon_o the_o church_n in_o after-age_n by_o tradition_n apostolical_a of_o this_o we_o have_v sufficient_a testimony_n from_o origen_n 8._o pro_fw-la hoc_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n traditionem_fw-la accepit_fw-la etiam_fw-la parvulis_fw-la baptismum_fw-la dare_n and_o s._n austin_n hoc_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la à_fw-la majorum_fw-la fide_fw-la percepit_fw-la and_o general_o all_o writer_n as_o calvin_n say_v affirm_v the_o same_o thing_n for_o nullus_fw-la est_fw-la scriptor_n tam_fw-la vetustus_fw-la qui_fw-la non_fw-la ejus_fw-la originem_fw-la ad_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la seculum_fw-la pro_fw-la certo_fw-la referat_fw-la from_o hence_o the_o conclusion_n be_v that_o infant_n ought_v to_o be_v baptize_v that_o it_o be_v simple_o necessary_a that_o they_o who_o deny_v it_o be_v heretic_n and_o such_o be_v not_o to_o be_v endure_v because_o they_o deny_v to_o infant_n hope_n and_o take_v away_o the_o possibility_n of_o their_o salvation_n which_o be_v reveal_v to_o we_o on_o no_o other_o condition_n of_o which_o they_o be_v capable_a but_o baptism_n for_o by_o the_o insinuation_n of_o the_o type_n by_o the_o action_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o title_n infant_n have_v to_o heaven_n by_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o the_o energy_n of_o the_o promise_n by_o the_o reasonableness_n of_o the_o thing_n by_o the_o infinite_a necessity_n on_o the_o infant_n be_v part_n by_o the_o practice_n apostolical_a by_o their_o tradition_n and_o the_o universal_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n by_o all_o these_o god_n and_o good_a people_n proclaim_v the_o lawfulness_n the_o conveniency_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o infant_n baptism_n 12._o to_o all_o this_o the_o anabaptist_n give_v a_o soft_a and_o gentle_a answer_n that_o it_o be_v a_o goodly_a harangue_n which_o upon_o strict_a examination_n will_v come_v to_o nothing_o that_o it_o pretend_v fair_o and_o signify_v little_a that_o some_o of_o these_o allegation_n be_v false_a some_o impertinent_a and_o all_o the_o rest_n insufficient_a 13._o for_o the_o argument_n from_o circumcision_n be_v invalid_a upon_o infinite_a consideration_n figure_n and_o type_n prove_v nothing_o unless_o a_o commandment_n go_v along_o with_o they_o or_o some_o express_a to_o signify_v such_o to_o be_v their_o purpose_n for_o the_o deluge_n of_o water_n and_o the_o ark_n of_o noah_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o
baptism_n say_v peter_n and_o if_o therefore_o the_o circumstance_n of_o one_o shall_v be_v draw_v to_o the_o other_o we_o shall_v make_v baptism_n a_o prodigy_n ratherthen_n a_o rite_n the_o paschall_n lamb_n be_v a_o type_n of_o the_o eucharist_n which_o succeed_v the_o other_o as_o baptism_n do_v to_o circumcision_n but_o because_o there_o be_v in_o the_o manducation_n of_o the_o paschall_n lamb_n no_o prescription_n of_o sacramental_a drink_n shall_v we_o thence_o conclude_v that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v to_o be_v minister_v but_o in_o one_o kind_n and_o even_o in_o the_o very_a instance_n of_o this_o argument_n suppose_v a_o correspondence_n of_o analogy_n between_o circumcision_n and_o baptism_n yet_o there_o be_v no_o correspondence_n of_o identity_n for_o although_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o both_o of_o they_o do_v consign_v the_o covenant_n of_o faith_n yet_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o circumstance_n of_o child_n being_n circumcise_a that_o so_o concern_v that_o mystery_n but_o that_o it_o may_v very_o well_o be_v give_v to_o child_n and_o yet_o baptism_n only_o to_o man_n of_o reason_n because_o circumcision_n leave_v a_o character_n in_o the_o flesh_n which_o be_v imprint_v upon_o infant_n do_v its_o work_n to_o they_o when_o they_o come_v to_o age_n and_o such_o a_o character_n be_v necessary_a because_o there_o be_v no_o word_n add_v to_o the_o sign_n but_o baptism_n imprint_n nothing_o that_o remain_v on_o the_o body_n and_o if_o it_o leave_v a_o character_n at_o all_o it_o be_v upon_o the_o soul_n to_o which_o also_o the_o word_n be_v add_v which_o be_v as_o much_o a_o part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o the_o sign_n itself_o be_v for_o both_o which_o reason_n it_o be_v requisite_a that_o the_o person_n baptize_v shall_v be_v capable_a of_o reason_n that_o they_o may_v be_v capable_a both_o of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o impress_n make_v upon_o the_o spirit_n since_o therefore_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o parity_n do_v whole_o fail_v there_o be_v nothing_o leave_v to_o infer_v a_o necessity_n of_o comply_v in_o this_o circumstance_n of_o age_n any_o more_o than_o in_o the_o other_o annex_v of_o the_o type_n and_o the_o case_n be_v clear_a in_o the_o bishop_n question_n to_o cyprian_a fidum_fw-la for_o why_o shall_v not_o infant_n be_v baptize_v just_a upon_o the_o eight_o day_n as_o well_o as_o circumcise_v if_o the_o correspondence_n of_o the_o rite_n be_v a_o argument_n to_o infer_v one_o circumstance_n which_o be_v impertinent_a and_o accidental_a to_o the_o mysteriousness_n of_o the_o rite_n why_o shall_v it_o not_o infer_v all_o and_o then_o also_o female_n must_v not_o be_v baptize_v because_o they_o be_v not_o circumcise_v but_o it_o be_v more_o proper_a if_o we_o will_v understand_v it_o right_n to_o prosecute_v the_o analogy_n from_o the_o type_n to_o the_o anti-type_n by_o way_n of_o letter_n and_o spirit_n and_o signification_n and_o as_o circumcision_n figure_v baptism_n so_o also_o the_o adjunct_n of_o the_o circumcision_n shall_v signify_v something_o spiritual_a in_o the_o adherency_n of_o baptism_n and_o therefore_o as_o infant_n be_v circumcise_a so_o spiritual_a infant_n shall_v be_v baptise_a which_o be_v spiritual_a circumcision_n for_o therefore_o babe_n have_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o type_n to_o signify_v that_o we_o must_v when_o we_o give_v our_o name_n to_o christ_n become_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d child_n in_o malice_n for_o unless_o you_o become_v like_o one_o of_o these_o little_a one_o you_o can_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n say_v our_o bless_a saviour_n and_o then_o the_o type_n be_v make_v complete_a and_o this_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o in_o the_o age_n next_o to_o the_o apostle_n they_o give_v to_o all_o baptize_v person_n milk_n and_o honey_n to_o represent_v to_o they_o their_o duty_n that_o though_o in_o age_n and_o understanding_n they_o be_v man_n yet_o they_o be_v babe_n in_o christ_n and_o child_n in_o malice_n but_o to_o infer_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o paedobaptists_a be_v so_o weak_a a_o manner_n of_o argue_v that_o austin_n who_o device_n it_o be_v and_o man_n use_v to_o be_v in_o love_n with_o their_o own_o fancy_n at_o the_o most_o pretend_a it_o but_o as_o probable_a and_o a_o mere_a conjecture_n 14._o and_o as_o ill_a success_n will_v they_o have_v with_o the_o other_o argument_n as_o with_o this_o for_o from_o the_o action_n of_o christ_n blessing_n infant_n to_o infer_v they_o be_v to_o be_v baptize_v prove_v nothing_o so_o much_o as_o that_o there_o be_v great_a want_n of_o better_a argument_n the_o conclusion_n will_v be_v with_o more_o probability_n derive_v thus_o christ_n bless_v child_n and_o so_o dismiss_v they_o but_o baptize_v they_o not_o therefore_o infant_n be_v not_o to_o be_v baptize_v but_o let_v this_o be_v as_o weak_a as_o its_o enemy_n yet_o that_o christ_n do_v not_o baptize_v they_o be_v a_o argument_n sufficient_a that_o christ_n have_v other_o way_n of_o bring_v they_o to_o heaven_n then_o by_o baptism_n he_o pass_v his_o act_n of_o grace_n upon_o they_o by_o benediction_n and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n 15._o and_o therefore_o although_o neither_o infant_n nor_o any_o man_n in_o puris_fw-la naturalibus_fw-la can_v attain_v to_o a_o supernatural_a end_n without_o the_o addition_n of_o some_o instrument_n or_o mean_n of_o god_n appoint_v ordinary_o and_o regular_o yet_o where_o god_n have_v not_o appoint_v a_o rule_n nor_o a_o order_n as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o infant_n we_o contend_v he_o have_v not_o the_o argument_n be_v invalid_a and_o as_o we_o be_v sure_a that_o god_n have_v not_o command_v infant_n to_o be_v baptize_v so_o we_o be_v sure_a god_n will_v do_v they_o no_o injustice_n nor_o damn_v they_o for_o what_o they_o can_v help_v 16._o and_o therefore_o let_v they_o be_v press_v with_o all_o the_o inconvenience_n that_o be_v consequent_a to_o original_a sin_n yet_o either_o it_o will_v not_o be_v lay_v to_o the_o charge_n of_o infant_n so_o as_o to_o be_v sufficient_a to_o condemn_v they_o or_o if_o it_o can_v yet_o the_o mercy_n and_o absolute_a goodness_n of_o god_n will_v secure_v they_o if_o he_o take_v they_o away_o before_o they_o can_v glorify_v he_o with_o a_o free_a obedience_n quid_fw-la ergò_fw-la festinat_fw-la innocens_fw-la aetas_fw-la ad_fw-la remissionem_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la be_v the_o question_n of_o tertullian_n lib._n de_fw-la bapt._n he_o know_v no_o such_o danger_n from_o their_o original_a guilt_n as_o to_o drive_v they_o to_o a_o laver_n of_o which_o in_o that_o age_n of_o innocence_n they_o have_v no_o need_n as_o he_o conceive_v and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o fly_v to_o the_o help_n of_o other_o for_o tongue_n and_o heart_n and_o faith_n and_o predisposition_n to_o baptism_n for_o what_o need_v all_o this_o stir_n as_o infant_n without_o their_o own_o consent_n without_o any_o act_n of_o their_o own_o and_o without_o any_o exterior_a solennity_n contract_v the_o guilt_n of_o adam_n sin_n and_o so_o be_v liable_a to_o all_o the_o punishment_n which_o can_v with_o justice_n descend_v upon_o his_o posterity_n who_o be_v personal_o innocent_a so_o infant_n shall_v be_v restore_v without_o any_o solennity_n or_o act_n of_o their_o own_o or_o of_o any_o other_o man_n for_o they_o by_o the_o second_o adam_n by_o the_o redemption_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o his_o righteousness_n and_o mercy_n apply_v either_o immediate_o or_o how_o or_o when_o he_o shall_v be_v please_v to_o appoint_v and_o so_o augustine_n argument_n will_v come_v to_o nothing_o without_o any_o need_n of_o godfather_n or_o the_o faith_n of_o any_o body_n else_o and_o it_o be_v too_o narrow_a a_o conception_n of_o god_n almighty_n because_o he_o have_v tie_v we_o to_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o ceremony_n of_o his_o own_o institution_n that_o therefore_o he_o have_v tie_v himself_o to_o it_o many_o thousand_o way_n there_o be_v by_o which_o god_n can_v bring_v any_o reasonable_a soul_n to_o himself_o but_o nothing_o be_v more_o unreasonable_a then_o because_o he_o have_v tie_v all_o man_n of_o year_n and_o discretion_n to_o this_o way_n therefore_o we_o of_o our_o own_o head_n shall_v carry_v infant_n to_o he_o that_o way_n without_o his_o direction_n the_o conceit_n be_v poor_a and_o low_a and_o the_o action_n consequent_a to_o it_o be_v too_o bold_a and_o venturous_a mysterium_fw-la meum_fw-la mihi_fw-la &_o filiis_fw-la domûs_fw-la meae_fw-la let_v he_o do_v what_o he_o please_v to_o infant_n we_o must_v not_o 17._o only_o this_o be_v certain_a that_o god_n have_v as_o great_a care_n of_o infant_n as_o of_o other_o and_o because_o they_o have_v no_o capacity_n of_o do_v such_o act_n as_o may_v be_v in_o order_n to_o acquire_v salvation_n god_n will_v by_o his_o own_o immediate_a mercy_n bring_v they_o thither_o
and_o predisposition_n of_o the_o suscipient_fw-la if_o by_o the_o external_a work_n of_o the_o sacrament_n alone_o how_o do_v this_o differ_v from_o the_o opus_fw-la operatum_fw-la of_o the_o papist_n save_v that_o it_o be_v worse_a for_o they_o say_v the_o sacrament_n do_v not_o produce_v its_o effect_n but_o in_o a_o suscipient_fw-la dispose_v by_o all_o requisite_n and_o due_a preparative_n of_o piety_n faith_n and_o repentance_n though_o in_o a_o subject_n so_o dispose_v they_o say_v the_o sacrament_n by_o its_o own_o virtue_n do_v it_o but_o this_o opinion_n say_v it_o do_v it_o of_o itself_o without_o the_o help_n or_o so_o much_o as_o the_o coexistence_n of_o any_o condition_n but_o the_o mere_a reception_n but_o if_o the_o sacrament_n do_v not_o do_v its_o work_n alone_o but_o per_fw-la modum_fw-la recipientis_fw-la according_a to_o the_o predisposition_n of_o the_o suscipient_fw-la then_o because_o infant_n can_v neither_o hinder_v it_o nor_o do_v any_o thing_n to_o far_o it_o it_o do_v they_o no_o benefit_n at_o all_o and_o if_o any_o man_n run_v for_o succour_v to_o that_o explode_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o infant_n have_v faith_n or_o any_o other_o inspire_v habit_n of_o i_o know_v not_o what_o or_o how_o we_o desire_v no_o more_o advantage_n in_o the_o world_n then_o that_o they_o be_v constrain_v to_o a_o answer_n without_o revelation_n against_o reason_n common_a sense_n and_o all_o the_o experience_n in_o the_o world_n the_o sum_n of_o the_o argument_n in_o short_a be_v this_o though_o under_o another_o representment_n either_o baptism_n be_v a_o mere_a ceremony_n or_o it_o imply_v a_o duty_n on_o our_o part_n if_o it_o be_v a_o ceremony_n only_o how_o do_v it_o sanctify_v we_o or_o make_v the_o comer_n thereunto_o perfect_a if_o it_o imply_v a_o duty_n on_o our_o part_n how_o then_o can_v child_n receive_v it_o who_o can_v do_v duty_n at_o all_o and_o indeed_o this_o way_n of_o ministration_n make_v baptism_n to_o be_v whole_o a_o outward_a duty_n a_o work_n of_o the_o law_n a_o carnal_a ordinance_n it_o make_v we_o adhere_v to_o the_o letter_n without_o regard_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o be_v satisfy_v with_o shadow_n to_o return_v to_o bondage_n to_o relinquish_v the_o mysteriousness_n the_o substance_n and_o spirituality_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o argument_n be_v of_o so_o much_o the_o more_o consideration_n because_o under_o the_o spiritual_a covenant_n or_o the_o gospel_n of_o grace_n if_o the_o mystery_n go_v not_o before_o the_o symbol_n which_o it_o do_v when_o the_o symbol_n be_v seal_n and_o consignation_n of_o the_o grace_n as_o it_o be_v say_v the_o sacrament_n be_v yet_o it_o always_o accompany_v it_o but_o never_o follow_v in_o order_n of_o time_n and_o this_o be_v clear_a in_o the_o perpetual_a analogy_n of_o holy_a scripture_n for_o baptism_n be_v never_o propound_v mention_v or_o enjoin_v as_o a_o mean_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n or_o of_o eternal_a life_n but_o something_o of_o duty_n choice_n and_o sanctity_n be_v join_v with_o it_o in_o order_n to_o production_n of_o the_o end_n so_o mention_v know_v you_o not_o that_o as_o many_o as_o be_v baptize_v into_o christ_n jesus_n 6.3_o be_v baptize_v into_o his_o death_n there_o be_v the_o mystery_n and_o the_o symbol_n together_o and_o declare_v to_o be_v perpetual_o unite_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d all_o of_o we_o who_o be_v baptize_v into_o one_o be_v baptize_v into_o the_o other_o not_o only_o into_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n but_o into_o his_o death_n also_o but_o the_o meaning_n of_o thi●_n as_o it_o be_v explain_v in_o the_o follow_a word_n of_o s._n paul_n make_v much_o for_o our_o purpose_n for_o to_o be_v baptize_v into_o his_o death_n signify_v to_o be_v bury_v with_o he_o in_o baptism_n 4._o that_o as_o christ_n rise_v from_o the_o dead_a we_o also_o shall_v walk_v in_o newness_n of_o life_n that_o be_v the_o full_a mystery_n of_o baptism_n for_o be_v baptize_v into_o his_o death_n or_o which_o be_v all_o one_o 5._o in_o the_o next_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d into_o the_o likeness_n of_o his_o death_n can_v go_v alone_o if_o we_o be_v so_o plant_v into_o christ_n we_o shall_v be_v partaker_n of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o that_o be_v not_o here_o instance_a in_o precise_a reward_n but_o in_o exact_a duty_n for_o all_o this_o be_v nothing_o but_o crucifixion_n of_o the_o old_a man_n 6._o a_o destroy_v the_o body_n of_o sin_n that_o we_o no_o long_o serve_v sin_n this_o indeed_o be_v true_o to_o be_v baptize_v both_o in_o the_o symbol_n and_o the_o mystery_n whatsoever_o be_v less_o than_o this_o be_v but_o the_o symbol_n only_o a_o mere_a ceremony_n a_o opus_fw-la operatum_fw-la a_o dead_a letter_n a_o empty_a shadow_n a_o instrument_n without_o a_o agent_n to_o manage_v or_o force_v to_o actuate_v it_o plain_a yet_o whosoever_o be_v baptize_v into_o christ_n have_v put_v on_o christ_n have_v put_v on_o the_o new_a man_n but_o to_o put_v on_o this_o new_a man_n be_v to_o be_v form_v in_o righteousness_n and_o holiness_n and_o truth_n this_o whole_a argument_n be_v the_o very_a word_n of_o s._n paul_n the_o major_a proposition_n be_v dogmatical_o determine_v gal._n 3.27_o the_o minor_a in_o ephes._n 4.24_o the_o conclusion_n than_o be_v obvious_a that_o they_o who_o be_v not_o form_v new_a in_o righteousness_n and_o holiness_n and_o truth_n they_o who_o remain_v in_o the_o present_a incapacity_n can_v walk_v in_o the_o newness_n of_o life_n they_o have_v not_o be_v baptize_v into_o christ_n and_o then_o they_o have_v but_o one_o member_n of_o the_o distinction_n use_v by_o s._n peter_n they_o have_v that_o baptism_n which_o be_v a_o put_v away_o the_o filth_n of_o the_o flesh_n but_o they_o have_v not_o that_o baptism_n which_o be_v the_o answer_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n towards_o god_n 3.21_o which_o be_v the_o only_a baptism_n that_o save_v we_o and_o this_o be_v the_o case_n of_o child_n and_o then_o the_o case_n be_v thus_o as_o infant_n by_o the_o force_n of_o nature_n can_v put_v themselves_o into_o a_o supernatural_a condition_n and_o therefore_o say_v the_o paedobaptists_a they_o need_v baptism_n to_o put_v they_o into_o it_o so_o if_o they_o be_v baptize_v before_o the_o use_n of_o reason_n before_o the_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n before_o the_o operation_n of_o grace_n before_o they_o can_v throw_v off_o the_o work_n of_o darkness_n and_o live_v in_o righteousness_n and_o newness_n of_o life_n they_o be_v never_o the_o near_o from_o the_o pain_n of_o hell_n they_o shall_v be_v save_v by_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o their_o own_o innocence_n though_o they_o die_v in_o puris_fw-la naturalibus_fw-la and_o baptism_n will_v carry_v they_o no_o further_o for_o that_o baptism_n that_o save_v we_o be_v not_o the_o only_a wash_n with_o water_n of_o which_o only_a child_n be_v capable_a but_o the_o answer_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n towards_o god_n of_o which_o they_o be_v not_o capable_a till_o the_o use_n of_o reason_n till_o they_o know_v to_o choose_v the_o good_a and_o refuse_v the_o evil_n and_o from_o thence_o i_o consider_v anew_o that_o all_o vow_n make_v by_o person_n under_o other_o name_n stipulation_n make_v by_o minor_n be_v not_o valid_a till_o they_o by_o a_o superven_a act_n after_o they_o be_v of_o sufficient_a age_n do_v ratify_v they_o why_o then_o may_v not_o infant_n as_o well_o make_v the_o vow_n de_fw-fr novo_fw-la as_o de_fw-fr novo_fw-la ratify_v that_o which_o be_v make_v for_o they_o ab_fw-la antiquo_fw-la when_o they_o come_v to_o year_n of_o choice_n if_o the_o infant_n vow_v be_v invalid_a till_o the_o manly_a confirmation_n why_o be_v it_o not_o as_o good_a they_o stay_v to_o make_v it_o till_o that_o time_n matth._n before_o which_o if_o they_o do_v make_v it_o it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n this_o will_v be_v consider_v 32._o and_o in_o conclusion_n our_o way_n be_v the_o sure_a way_n for_o not_o to_o baptize_v child_n till_o they_o can_v give_v a_o account_n of_o their_o faith_n be_v the_o most_o proportionable_a to_o a_o act_n of_o reason_n and_o humanity_n and_o it_o can_v have_v no_o danger_n in_o it_o for_o to_o say_v that_o infant_n may_v be_v damn_v for_o want_v of_o baptism_n a_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o in_o their_o power_n to_o acquire_v they_o be_v person_n not_o yet_o capable_a of_o a_o law_n be_v to_o affirm_v that_o of_o god_n which_o we_o dare_v not_o say_v of_o any_o wise_a and_o good_a man_n certain_o it_o be_v much_o derogatory_n to_o god_n justice_n and_o a_o plain_a defiance_n to_o the_o infinite_a reputation_n of_o his_o goodness_n 33._o and_o therefore_o whoever_o will_v pertinacious_o persist_v in_o this_o opinion_n of_o the_o paedobaptists_a and_o practice_v it_o according_o they_o pollute_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o everlasting_a
those_o little_a one_o which_o be_v then_o bring_v for_o they_o be_v come_v already_o and_o though_o they_o be_v tacit_o reprove_v who_o offer_v to_o hinder_v they_o yet_o the_o child_n be_v present_a and_o therefore_o it_o must_v relate_v to_o other_o to_o all_o infant_n that_o they_o shall_v for_o ever_o be_v bring_v to_o christ._n and_o this_o be_v also_o to_o be_v gather_v from_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o such_o not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o these_o for_o these_o be_v but_o a_o few_o but_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v of_o such_o as_o these_o who_o be_v now_o bring_v child_n make_v up_o a_o great_a portion_n of_o it_o and_o the_o other_o portion_n be_v make_v up_o by_o such_o who_o become_v like_a to_o these_o and_o if_o the_o transcript_n belong_v to_o the_o kingdom_n it_o be_v strange_a if_o the_o exemplar_n shall_v not_o if_o none_o can_v enter_v but_o they_o who_o be_v like_o child_n it_o must_v be_v certain_a that_o nothing_o can_v hinder_v the_o child_n and_o last_o if_o we_o regard_v the_o doctrine_n which_o christ_n establish_v upon_o this_o action_n it_o will_v finish_v the_o argument_n into_o a_o certain_a conclusion_n whosoever_o shall_v not_o receive_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n as_o a_o little_a child_n shall_v not_o enter_v therein_o receive_v it_o as_o a_o little_a child_n receive_v it_o that_o be_v with_o innocence_n and_o without_o any_o let_v or_o hindrance_n so_o that_o they_o who_o receive_v it_o best_o receive_v it_o but_o as_o little_a child_n for_o they_o be_v the_o first_o in_o the_o kind_n be_v make_v the_o measure_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o if_o other_o shall_v be_v exclude_v for_o not_o be_v like_o these_o it_o be_v certain_a these_o be_v not_o to_o be_v exclude_v for_o not_o be_v like_o other_o other_o be_v command_v to_o be_v like_o they_o in_o innocence_n and_o that_o be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v they_o recipient_n of_o the_o divine_a grace_n but_o therefore_o to_o make_v infant_n to_o be_v recipient_n it_o be_v not_o require_v that_o they_o shall_v have_v the_o use_n of_o reason_n and_o we_o do_v not_o well_o consider_v that_o it_o be_v god_n who_o create_v all_o our_o capacity_n of_o grace_n and_o it_o be_v he_o who_o make_v we_o able_a to_o receive_v what_o he_o intend_v to_o bestow_v and_o nothing_o of_o we_o can_v do_v it_o no_o good_a action_n can_v deserve_v any_o grace_n much_o less_o the_o first_o grace_n the_o grace_n of_o baptism_n and_o all_o that_o man_n can_v do_v in_o the_o whole_a use_n of_o their_o reason_n and_o order_n of_o their_o life_n be_v to_o return_v as_o much_o as_o they_o can_v to_o the_o innocence_n of_o their_o infancy_n and_o prayer_n be_v but_o a_o seek_n after_o pardon_n and_o grace_n whereby_o we_o may_v stand_v as_o innocent_n before_o god_n and_o charity_n be_v but_o grow_v and_o be_v here_o principal_o the_o extermination_n of_o all_o malice_n and_o envy_v and_o by_o alm_n as_o daniel_n advise_v to_o nabuchadnezzar_n we_o do_v but_o break_v off_o our_o sin_n and_o our_o health_n be_v but_o the_o expulsion_n of_o evil_a humour_n and_o our_o pleasure_n be_v but_o the_o removal_n of_o a_o pain_n and_o optimus_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la minimis_fw-la urgetur_fw-la and_o our_o best_a holiness_n be_v be_v like_a to_o infant_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o god_n make_v they_o the_o principal_n in_o this_o line_n and_o love_v they_o so_o well_o who_o be_v innocent_a of_o any_o consent_n to_o evil_n and_o although_o they_o have_v do_v no_o good_a yet_o they_o be_v all_o that_o which_o god_n love_v they_o be_v his_o image_n undefiled_a unscratched_a unbroken_a by_o any_o act_n or_o consent_v of_o their_o own_o but_o than_o it_o be_v a_o very_a great_a wonder_n if_o these_o in_o who_o god_n see_v the_o work_n of_o his_o own_o hand_n the_o image_n of_o his_o own_o essence_n the_o purity_n of_o innocence_n the_o capacity_n of_o glory_n to_o who_o his_o holy_a son_n give_v such_o signal_n testimony_n of_o his_o love_n upon_o who_o he_o bestow_v a_o blessing_n for_o who_o sake_n he_o be_v much_o displease_v when_o they_o be_v hinder_v to_o come_v who_o he_o declare_v the_o exemplar_n of_o those_o who_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o the_o pattern_n and_o precedent_n of_o receive_v his_o kingdom_n to_o who_o he_o impart_v spiritual_a favour_n by_o a_o ceremony_n and_o selemnity_n i_o say_v it_o be_v a_o very_a great_a wonder_n that_o these_o shall_v not_o receive_v the_o same_o favour_n in_o the_o way_n of_o ordinary_a establishment_n who_o have_v the_o principal_a title_n and_o do_v actual_o receive_v they_o in_o the_o extraordinary_a before_o the_o general_a appointment_n of_o the_o other_o if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n that_o can_v hinder_v they_o it_o must_v be_v something_o without_o for_o nothing_o within_o can_v hinder_v they_o to_o receive_v ●hat_n which_o other_o can_v receive_v but_o by_o be_v like_o they_o and_o if_o any_o thing_n without_o do_v hinder_v they_o it_o can_v expect_v to_o fare_v better_a than_o the_o disciple_n with_o who_o christ_n be_v much_o displease_v but_o of_o what_o can_v they_o now_o be_v hinder_v not_o of_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o sacrament_n that_o be_v their_o own_o by_o way_n of_o eminent_a relation_n and_o propriety_n the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v they_o and_o of_o such_o as_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o sacrament_n therefore_o or_o solemnity_n for_o that_o be_v whole_o for_o the_o other_o and_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o instrument_n and_o have_v a_o relative_a use_n and_o none_o else_o and_o as_o it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n to_o any_o man_n till_o they_o receive_v the_o grace_n of_o it_o so_o it_o can_v be_v for_o no_o reason_n detain_v from_o they_o who_o shall_v certain_o have_v the_o grace_n though_o they_o be_v forcible_o deprive_v of_o the_o instrument_n unless_o therefore_o they_o who_o can_v come_v to_o christ_n and_o be_v command_v to_o be_v bring_v to_o christ_n when_o he_o be_v upon_o earth_n may_v not_o can_v come_v to_o he_o now_o that_o he_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o make_v our_o advocate_n and_o our_o gracious_a lord_n and_o king_n unless_o they_o who_o have_v the_o honour_n of_o a_o solemnity_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o christ_n may_v not_o be_v admit_v to_o a_o ceremony_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o servant_n unless_o baptismal_a water_n be_v more_o than_o baptismal_a grace_n and_o to_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o church_n be_v more_o then_o to_o be_v admit_v to_o heaven_n it_o can_v with_o any_o plausible_a reason_n be_v pretend_v that_o infant_n be_v to_o be_v exclude_v form_n this_o sacrament_n ad_fw-la 14._o now_o as_o for_o the_o little_a thing_n which_o the_o anab._n murmur_n against_o the_o first_o essay_n of_o this_o argument_n they_o will_v quick_o disappear_v for_o whereas_o he_o say_v it_o be_v a_o better_a argument_n to_o say_v that_o christ_n bless_a child_n and_o so_o dismiss_v they_o but_o baptize_v they_o not_o therefore_o infant_n be_v not_o to_o be_v baptize_v this_o be_v perfect_o nothing_o because_o christ_n baptize_v none_o at_o all_o man_n woman_n nor_o child_n and_o this_o will_v conclude_v against_o the_o baptism_n of_o man_n too_o as_o well_o as_o infant_n and_o whereas_o it_o be_v hence_o infer_v that_o because_o christ_n baptize_v they_o not_o therefore_o he_o have_v other_o way_n of_o bring_v they_o to_o heaven_n then_o by_o baptism_n it_o be_v very_o true_a but_o make_v very_o much_o against_o they_o for_o if_o god_n have_v other_o way_n of_o bring_v they_o to_o heaven_n who_o yet_o can_v believe_v if_o they_o can_v go_v to_o heaven_n without_o faith_n why_o not_o to_o the_o font_n if_o they_o can_v obtain_v that_o glorious_a end_n in_o order_n to_o which_o the_o sacrament_n be_v appoint_v without_o the_o act_n of_o believe_v than_o so_o also_o they_o may_v the_o mean_n but_o for_o what_o end_n to_o what_o purpose_n do_v they_o detain_v the_o water_n when_o they_o can_v keep_v back_o the_o spirit_n and_o why_o will_v they_o keep_v they_o from_o the_o church_n when_o they_o can_v keep_v they_o from_o god_n and_o why_o do_v man_n require_v hard_a condition_n of_o be_v baptize_v then_o of_o be_v save_v and_o then_o that_o god_n will_v by_o other_o mean_n bring_v they_o to_o heaven_n if_o they_o have_v not_o baptism_n be_v argument_n sufficient_a to_o prove_v that_o god_n goodness_n prevail_v over_o the_o malice_n and_o ignorance_n of_o man_n and_o that_o man_n contend_v more_o for_o shadow_n then_o for_o substance_n and_o be_v more_o nice_a in_o their_o own_o ministration_n than_o god_n be_v in_o the_o whole_a effusion_n of_o his_o bounty_n and_o therefore_o that_o these_o disagree_a person_n may_v do_v themselves_o injury_n but_o in_o the_o event_n of_o thing_n none_o to_o the_o
child_n so_o that_o this_o argument_n though_o sligth_o pass_v over_o by_o the_o anab._n yet_o be_v of_o very_o great_a persuasion_n in_o this_o article_n and_o so_o use_v and_o rely_v upon_o by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o her_o office_n of_o baptism_n and_o for_o that_o reason_n i_o have_v the_o more_o insist_v upon_o it_o ad._n 5._o the_o next_o argument_n without_o any_o alteration_n or_o addition_n stand_v firm_a upon_o its_o own_o basis_n adam_n sin_v and_o leave_v nakedness_n to_o descend_v upon_o his_o posterity_n a_o relative_a guilt_n and_o a_o remain_a misery_n he_o leave_v enough_o to_o kill_v we_o but_o nothing_o to_o make_v we_o alive_a he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o mankind_n in_o order_n to_o temporal_a felicity_n but_o there_o be_v another_o head_n intend_v to_o be_v the_o representative_a of_o humane_a nature_n to_o bring_v we_o to_o eternal_a but_o the_o temporal_a we_o lose_v by_o adam_n and_o the_o eternal_a we_o can_v never_o receive_v from_o he_o but_o from_o christ_n only_o from_o adam_n we_o receive_v our_o nature_n such_o as_o it_o be_v but_o grace_n and_o truth_n come_v by_o jesus_n christ_n adam_n leave_v we_o a_o imperfect_a nature_n that_o tend_v to_o sin_n and_o death_n but_o he_o leave_v we_o nothing_o else_o and_o therefore_o to_o holiness_n and_o life_n we_o must_v enter_v from_o another_o principle_n so_o that_o beside_o the_o natural_a birth_n of_o infant_n there_o must_v be_v something_o add_v by_o which_o they_o must_v be_v reckon_v in_o a_o new_a account_n they_o must_v be_v bear_v again_o they_o must_v be_v reckon_v in_o chrst_n they_o must_v be_v adopt_v to_o the_o inheritance_n and_o admit_v to_o the_o promise_n and_o entitle_v to_o the_o spirit_n now_o that_o this_o be_v do_v ordinary_o in_o baptism_n be_v not_o to_o be_v deny_v for_o therefore_o it_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o font_n or_o laver_n of_o regeneration_n it_o be_v the_o gate_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v the_o solemnity_n of_o our_o admission_n to_o the_o covenant_n evangelical_n and_o if_o infant_n can_v go_v to_o heaven_n by_o the_o first_o or_o natural_a birth_n than_o they_o must_v go_v by_o a_o second_o and_o supernatural_a and_o since_o there_o be_v no_o other_o solemnity_n or_o sacrament_n no_o way_n of_o be_v bear_v again_o that_o we_o know_v of_o but_o by_o the_o way_n of_o god_n appoint_v and_o he_o have_v appoint_v baptism_n and_o all_o that_o be_v bear_v again_o be_v bear_v this_o way_n even_o man_n of_o reason_n who_o have_v or_o can_v receive_v the_o spirit_n be_v to_o enter_v at_o the_o door_n of_o baptism_n it_o follow_v that_o infant_n also_o must_v enter_v here_o or_o we_o can_v say_v that_o they_o be_v enter_v at_o all_o and_o it_o be_v high_o considerable_a that_o whereas_o the_o anab._n do_v clamorous_o and_o loud_o call_v for_o a_o precept_n for_o child_n baptism_n this_o consideration_n do_v his_o work_n for_o he_o and_o we_o he_o that_o show_v the_o way_n need_v not_o bid_v you_o walk_v in_o it_o and_o if_o there_o be_v but_o one_o door_n that_o stand_v open_a and_o all_o must_v enter_v some_o way_n or_o other_o it_o be_v a_o strange_a perverseness_n of_o argument_n to_o say_v that_o none_o shall_v pass_v in_o at_o that_o door_n unless_o they_o come_v alone_o and_o they_o that_o be_v bring_v or_o they_o that_o lean_a on_o crutch_n or_o the_o shoulder_n of_o other_o shall_v be_v exclude_v and_o undo_v for_o their_o infelicity_n and_o shall_v not_o receive_v help_n because_o they_o have_v the_o great_a need_n of_o it_o but_o these_o man_n use_v infant_n worse_o than_o the_o poor_a paralytic_n be_v treat_v at_o the_o pool_n of_o bethesda_n he_o can_v not_o be_v wash_v because_o he_o have_v none_o to_o put_v he_o in_o but_o these_o man_n will_v not_o suffer_v any_o one_o to_o put_v they_o in_o and_o until_o they_o can_v go_v in_o themselves_o they_o shall_v never_o have_v the_o benefit_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v move_v upon_o the_o water_n ad._n 15._o but_o the_o anab._n to_o this_o discourse_n give_v only_o this_o reply_n that_o the_o supposition_n or_o ground_n be_v true_a a_o man_n by_o adam_n or_o any_o way_n of_o nature_n can_v go_v to_o heaven_n neither_o man_n nor_o infant_n without_o the_o addition_n of_o some_o instrument_n or_o mean_n of_o god_n appoint_v but_o this_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v to_o be_v true_a only_o ordinary_o and_o regular_o but_o the_o case_n of_o infant_n be_v extraordinary_a for_o they_o be_v not_o within_o the_o rule_n and_o the_o way_n of_o ordinary_a dispensation_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o command_n for_o they_o to_o be_v baptize_v there_o will_v be_v some_o other_o way_n to_o supply_v it_o extraordinary_o to_o this_o i_o reply_v that_o this_o be_v a_o plain_a beg_n of_o the_o question_n or_o a_o deny_v the_o conclusion_n for_o the_o argument_n be_v this_o that_o baptism_n be_v the_o ordinary_a way_n or_o instrument_n of_o new_a birth_n and_o admission_n to_o the_o promise_v evangelical_n and_o supernatural_a happiness_n and_o we_o know_v of_o no_o other_o and_o it_o be_v as_o necessary_a for_o infant_n as_o for_o man_n to_o enter_v some_o way_n or_o other_o it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o they_o must_v go_v this_o way_n because_o there_o be_v a_o way_n for_o all_o and_o we_o know_v of_o no_o other_o but_o this_o therefore_o the_o presumption_n lie_v on_o this_o that_o infant_n must_v enter_v this_o way_n they_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v true_a in_o all_o but_o infant_n the_o contradictory_n of_o which_o be_v the_o conclusion_n and_o intend_v by_o the_o argument_n for_o whereas_o they_o say_v god_n have_v not_o appoint_v a_o rule_n and_o a_o order_n in_o this_o case_n of_o infant_n it_o be_v the_o thing_n in_o question_n and_o therefore_o be_v not_o by_o direct_a negation_n to_o be_v oppose_v against_o the_o contrary_a argument_n for_o i_o argue_v thus_o wherever_o there_o be_v no_o extraordinary_a way_n appoint_v there_o we_o must_v all_o go_v the_o ordinary_a but_o for_o infant_n there_o be_v no_o extraordinary_a way_n appoint_v or_o declare_v therefore_o they_o must_v go_v the_o ordinary_a and_o he_o that_o have_v without_o difference_n command_v that_o all_o nation_n shall_v be_v baptize_v have_v without_o difference_n command_v all_o sort_n of_o person_n and_o they_o may_v as_o well_o say_v that_o they_o be_v sure_a god_n have_v not_o command_v woman_n to_o be_v baptize_v or_o hermaphrodite_n or_o eunuch_n or_o fool_n or_o mute_n because_o they_o be_v not_o name_v in_o the_o precept_n for_o sometime_o in_o the_o census_n of_o a_o nation_n woman_n be_v no_o more_o reckon_v then_o child_n and_o when_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n come_v out_o of_o egypt_n be_v number_v there_o be_v no_o reckon_n either_o of_o woman_n or_o child_n and_o yet_o that_o be_v the_o number_n of_o the_o nation_n which_o be_v there_o describe_v 13._o but_o then_o as_o to_o the_o thing_n itself_o whether_o god_n have_v command_v infant_n to_o be_v baptize_v it_o be_v indeed_o a_o worthy_a inquiry_n and_o the_o sum_n of_o all_o this_o contestation_n but_o than_o it_o be_v also_o to_o be_v conclude_v by_o every_o argument_n that_o prove_v the_o thing_n to_o be_v holy_a or_o charitable_a or_o necessary_a or_o the_o mean_n of_o salvation_n or_o to_o be_v institute_v and_o make_v in_o order_n to_o a_o indispensable_a end_n for_o all_o commandment_n be_v not_o express_v in_o imperial_a form_n as_o we_o will_v or_o will_v not_o thou_o shall_v or_o shall_v not_o but_o some_o be_v by_o declaration_n of_o necessity_n some_o by_o a_o direct_a institution_n some_o by_o involution_n and_o apparent_a consequence_n some_o by_o proportion_n and_o analogy_n by_o identity_n and_o parity_n and_o christ_n never_o express_o command_v that_o we_o shall_v receive_v the_o holy_a communion_n but_o that_o when_o the_o supper_n be_v celebrate_v it_o shall_v be_v in_o his_o memorial_n and_o if_o we_o shall_v use_v the_o same_o method_n of_o argue_v in_o all_o other_o instance_n as_o the_o anabaptist_n do_v in_o this_o and_o omit_v every_o thing_n for_o which_o there_o be_v not_o a_o express_a commandment_n with_o a_o open_a nomination_n and_o describe_v of_o the_o capacity_n of_o the_o person_n concern_v in_o the_o duty_n we_o shall_v have_v neither_o sacrament_n nor_o ordinance_n fast_v nor_o vow_n communicate_v of_o woman_n nor_o baptise_v of_o the_o clergy_n and_o when_o saint_n ambrose_n be_v choose_v bishop_n before_o he_o be_v baptize_v it_o can_v never_o upon_o their_o account_n have_v be_v tell_v that_o he_o be_v oblige_v to_o baptism_n because_o though_o christ_n command_v the_o apostle_n to_o baptize_v other_o yet_o he_o no_o way_n tell_v they_o that_o their_o successor_n shall_v be_v baptize_v any_o more_o than_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o be_v
of_o who_o we_o read_v nothing_o in_o scripture_n that_o either_o they_o be_v actual_o baptize_v or_o have_v a_o commandment_n so_o to_o be_v to_o which_o may_v be_v add_v that_o as_o the_o take_n of_o priestly_a order_n disoblige_v the_o suscipient_fw-la from_o receive_v chrism_n or_o confirmation_n in_o case_n he_o have_v it_o not_o before_o so_o for_o aught_o appear_v in_o scripture_n to_o the_o contrary_a it_o may_v excuse_v from_o baptism_n but_o if_o it_o do_v not_o than_o the_o same_o way_n of_o argue_v which_o oblige_v woman_n or_o the_o clergy_n to_o be_v baptize_v will_v be_v sufficient_a warrant_n to_o we_o to_o require_v in_o the_o case_n of_o infant_n no_o more_o signal_n precept_n then_o in_o the_o other_o and_o to_o be_v content_a with_o the_o measure_n of_o wise_a man_n who_o give_v themselves_o to_o understand_v the_o meaning_n of_o doctrine_n and_o law_n and_o not_o to_o exact_v the_o tittle_n and_o unavoidable_a command_n by_o which_o fool_n and_o unwilling_a person_n be_v to_o be_v govern_v lest_o they_o die_v certain_o if_o they_o be_v not_o call_v upon_o with_o univocal_a express_a open_a and_o direct_a commandment_n but_o beside_o all_o this_o and_o the_o effect_n of_o all_o the_o other_o argument_n there_o be_v as_o much_o command_n for_o infant_n to_o be_v baptize_v as_o for_o man_n there_o be_v in_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n no_o nomination_n or_o specification_n of_o person_n but_o only_o in_o such_o word_n as_o can_v as_o well_o involve_v child_n as_o old_a man_n as_o nisi_fw-la quis_fw-la and_o omnes_fw-la gentes_fw-la and_o the_o like_a ad_fw-la 16._o but_o they_o have_v a_o device_n to_o save_v all_o harmless_a yet_o for_o though_o it_o shall_v be_v grant_v that_o infant_n be_v press_v with_o all_o the_o evil_n of_o original_a sin_n you_o there_o will_v be_v no_o necessity_n of_o baptism_n to_o infant_n because_o it_o may_v very_o well_o be_v suppose_v that_o as_o infant_n contract_v the_o relative_a guilt_n of_o adam_n sin_n that_o be_v the_o evil_n descend_v by_o a_o evil_a inheritance_n from_o he_o to_o we_o without_o any_o solemnity_n so_o may_v infant_n be_v acquit_v by_o christ_n without_o solemnity_n or_o the_o act_n of_o any_o other_o man_n this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o 16_o the_o number_n to_o which_o the_o answer_n be_v easy_a first_o that_o at_o the_o most_o it_o be_v but_o a_o dream_n of_o proportion_n and_o can_v infer_v only_o that_o if_o it_o be_v so_o there_o be_v some_o correspondency_n between_o the_o effect_n descend_v upon_o we_o from_o the_o two_o great_a representative_n of_o the_o world_n but_o it_o can_v never_o infer_v that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v so_o for_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o wrought_v by_o the_o way_n of_o nature_n in_o which_o the_o proportion_n be_v regular_a and_o constant_a but_o they_o be_v whole_o arbitrary_a and_o mysterious_a depend_v upon_o extrinsic_a cause_n which_o be_v conduct_v by_o other_o measure_n which_o we_o only_o know_v by_o event_n and_o can_v never_o understand_v the_o reason_n for_o because_o the_o sin_n of_o adam_n have_v effect_n upon_o we_o without_o a_o sacrament_n must_v it_o therefore_o be_v whole_o unnecessary_a that_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n be_v apply_v to_o we_o by_o sacramental_a ministration_n if_o so_o the_o argument_n will_v as_o well_o conclude_v against_o the_o baptism_n of_o man_n as_o of_o infant_n for_o since_o they_o die_v in_o adam_n and_o have_v no_o solemnity_n to_o convey_v that_o death_n therefore_o we_o by_o christ_n shall_v all_o be_v make_v alive_a and_o to_o convey_v this_o life_n there_o need_v no_o sacrament_n this_o way_n of_o argue_v therefore_o be_v a_o very_a trifle_n but_o yet_o this_o be_v not_o as_o infant_n be_v not_o infect_v with_o the_o stain_n and_o injure_v by_o the_o evil_n of_o adam_n sin_n but_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o natural_a generation_n so_o neither_o shall_v they_o partake_v of_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n death_n but_o by_o spiritual_a regeneration_n that_o be_v by_o be_v baptize_v into_o his_o death_n for_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o destroy_v then_o to_o make_v alive_a a_o single_a crime_n of_o one_o man_n be_v enough_o to_o ruin_v he_o and_o his_o posterity_n but_o to_o restore_v we_o it_o become_v necessary_a that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v incarnate_a and_o die_v and_o be_v bury_v and_o rise_v again_o and_o intercede_v for_o we_o and_o become_v our_o lawgiver_n and_o we_o be_v his_o subject_n and_o keep_v his_o commandment_n there_o be_v no_o such_o order_n of_o thing_n in_o our_o condemnation_n to_o death_n must_v it_o therefore_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o in_o the_o justification_n of_o we_o unto_o life_n to_o the_o first_o there_o need_v no_o sacrament_n for_o evil_a come_v fast_o enough_o but_o to_o the_o latter_a there_o must_v go_v so_o much_o as_o god_n please_v and_o the_o way_n which_o he_o have_v appoint_v we_o external_o be_v baptism_n to_o which_o if_o he_o have_v tie_v we_o it_o be_v no_o matter_n to_o we_o whether_o he_o have_v tie_v himself_o to_o it_o or_o no_o for_o although_o he_o can_v go_v which_o way_n he_o please_v yet_o he_o himself_o love_v to_o go_v in_o the_o way_n of_o his_o ordinary_a appoint_v as_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o extreme_a paucity_n of_o miracle_n which_o be_v in_o the_o world_n and_o he_o will_v not_o endure_v that_o we_o shall_v leave_v they_o so_o that_o although_o there_o be_v many_o thousand_o way_n by_o which_o god_n can_v bring_v any_o reasonable_a soul_n to_o himself_o yet_o he_o will_v bring_v no_o soul_n to_o himself_o by_o way_n extraordinary_a when_o he_o have_v appoint_v ordinary_a and_o therefore_o although_o it_o be_v unreasonable_a of_o our_o own_o head_n to_o carry_v infant_n to_o god_n by_o baptism_n without_o any_o direction_n from_o he_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o unreasonable_a to_o understand_v infant_n to_o be_v comprehend_v in_o the_o duty_n and_o to_o be_v intend_v in_o the_o general_a precept_n when_o the_o word_n do_v not_o exclude_v they_o nor_o any_o thing_n in_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o when_o they_o have_v a_o great_a necessity_n for_o the_o relief_n of_o which_o this_o way_n be_v command_v and_o no_o other_o way_n signify_v all_o the_o world_n will_v say_v there_o be_v reason_n we_o shall_v bring_v they_o also_o the_o same_o way_n to_o christ._n and_o therefore_o though_o we_o no_o way_n doubt_v but_o if_o we_o do_v not_o our_o duty_n to_o they_o god_n will_v yet_o perform_v his_o merciful_a intention_n yet_o that_o be_v nothing_o to_o we_o though_o god_n can_v save_v by_o miracle_n yet_o we_o must_v not_o neglect_v our_o charitable_a ministery_n let_v he_o do_v what_o he_o please_v to_o or_o for_o infant_n we_o must_v not_o neglect_v they_o ad_fw-la 6._o the_o argument_n which_o be_v here_o describe_v be_v a_o very_a reasonable_a inducement_n to_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o certain_a effect_n to_o be_v consequent_a to_o the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n because_o infant_n can_v do_v nothing_o towards_o heaven_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v design_v thither_o therefore_o god_n will_v supply_v it_o but_o he_o supply_v it_o not_o by_o any_o internal_a assistance_n and_o yet_o will_v supply_v it_o therefore_o by_o a_o external_a but_o there_o be_v no_o other_o external_a but_o baptism_n which_o be_v of_o his_o own_o institution_n and_o design_v to_o effect_v those_o blessing_n which_o infant_n need_v therefore_o we_o have_v reason_n to_o believe_v that_o by_o this_o way_n god_n will_v have_v they_o bring_v ad_fw-la 17._o to_o this_o it_o be_v answer_v after_o the_o old_a rate_n that_o god_n will_v do_v it_o by_o his_o own_o immediate_a act_n well_o i_o grant_v it_o that_o be_v he_o will_v give_v they_o salvation_n of_o his_o own_o goodness_n without_o any_o condition_n on_o the_o infant_n part_n personal_o perform_v without_o faith_n and_o obedience_n if_o the_o infant_n die_v before_o the_o use_n of_o reason_n but_o then_o whereas_o it_o be_v add_v that_o to_o say_v god_n will_v do_v it_o by_o a_o external_a act_n and_o ministry_n and_o that_o by_o this_o rite_n of_o baptism_n and_o no_o other_o be_v no_o good_a argument_n unless_o god_n can_v not_o do_v it_o without_o such_o mean_n or_o say_v he_o will_v not_o the_o reply_n be_v easy_a that_o we_o say_v god_n will_v effect_v this_o grace_n upon_o infant_n by_o this_o external_a ministry_n not_o because_o god_n can_v use_v another_o nor_o yet_o because_o he_o have_v say_v he_o will_v not_o but_o because_o he_o have_v give_v we_o this_o and_o have_v give_v we_o no_o other_o for_o he_o that_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o make_v a_o experiment_n may_v upon_o the_o same_o argument_n proceed_v thus_o god_n have_v give_v bread_n to_o strengthen_v man_n heart_n and_o have_v say_v that_o in_o the_o sweat_n of_o our_o
brow_n we_o shall_v eat_v bread_n and_o it_o be_v command_v that_o if_o they_o do_v not_o work_v they_o shall_v not_o eat_v there_o be_v certain_a law_n and_o condition_n of_o eat_v i_o will_v give_v to_o my_o labourer_n and_o hireling_n but_o therefore_o my_o child_n shall_v have_v none_o for_o be_v you_o sure_a if_o i_o give_v to_o my_o child_n no_o man's-meat_n yet_o god_n will_v take_v as_o great_a ●are_n of_o infant_n as_o of_o other_o and_o god_n will_v by_o his_o own_o immediate_a mercy_n keep_v they_o alive_a as_o long_o as_o he_o have_v intend_v they_o to_o live_v but_o to_o say_v that_o therefore_o he_o will_v do_v it_o by_o external_a food_n be_v no_o good_a argument_n unless_o god_n can_v not_o do_v it_o without_o such_o mean_n or_o that_o he_o have_v say_v he_o will_v not_o to_o this_o i_o suppose_v any_o reasonable_a person_n will_v say_v i_o have_v give_v sufficient_a answer_n if_o i_o tell_v he_o that_o the_o argument_n be_v good_a that_o the_o infant_n must_v eat_v man_n food_n although_o god_n can_v keep_v they_o alive_a without_o it_o and_o although_o he_o have_v not_o say_v that_o he_o will_v not_o keep_v they_o alive_a without_o it_o i_o say_v the_o argument_n be_v good_a because_o he_o have_v give_v they_o this_o way_n and_o though_o he_o can_v give_v they_o another_o and_o do_v never_o say_v he_o will_v not_o give_v they_o another_o yet_o because_o he_o never_o do_v give_v they_o another_o it_o be_v but_o reasonable_a that_o they_o shall_v have_v this_o to_o the_o last_o clause_n of_o this_o number_n viz._n why_o can_v god_n as_o well_o do_v his_o mercy_n to_o infant_n now_o immediate_o as_o he_o do_v before_o the_o institution_n either_o of_o circumcision_n or_o baptism_n i_o answer_v that_o i_o know_v no_o man_n that_o say_v he_o can_v but_o yet_o this_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o hinder_v babe_n from_o circumcision_n and_o why_o then_o shall_v it_o hinder_v they_o from_o baptism_n for_o though_o god_n can_v save_v infant_n always_o without_o circumcision_n as_o well_o as_o he_o do_v sometime_o yet_o he_o require_v this_o of_o they_o and_o therefore_o it_o may_v be_v so_o in_o baptism_n this_o pretence_n notwithstanding_o ad_fw-la 7._o this_o number_n speak_v to_o the_o main_a inquiry_n and_o show_v the_o commandment_n unless_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v of_o water_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n he_o shall_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n this_o precept_n be_v in_o all_o age_n expound_v to_o signify_v the_o ordinary_a necessity_n of_o baptism_n to_o all_o person_n and_o nisi_fw-la quis_fw-la can_v mean_v infant_n as_o well_o as_o man_n of_o age_n and_o because_o it_o command_v a_o new_a birth_n and_o a_o regeneration_n and_o imply_v that_o a_o natural_a birth_n can_v entitle_v we_o to_o heaven_n but_o the_o second_o birth_n must_v infant_n who_o have_v as_o much_o need_n and_o as_o much_o right_n to_o heaven_n as_o man_n of_o year_n and_o yet_o can_v have_v it_o by_o natural_a or_o first-birth_n must_v have_v it_o by_o the_o second_o and_o spiritual_a and_o therefore_o all_o be_v upon_o the_o same_o main_a account_n and_o when_o they_o be_v accidental_o difference_v by_o age_n they_o be_v also_o difference_v by_o correspondent_a accidental_a and_o proportionable_a duty_n but_o all_o must_v be_v bear_v again_o this_o birth_n be_v express_v here_o by_o water_n and_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v by_o the_o spirit_n in_o baptismal_a water_n for_o that_o be_v in_o scripture_n call_v the_o laver_n of_o a_o new_a birth_n or_o regeneration_n ad_fw-la 18._o but_o here_o the_o anab._n give_v we_o his_o warrant_n though_o christ_n say_v none_o but_o those_o who_o be_v bear_v again_o by_o water_n and_o the_o spirit_n shall_v enter_v into_o heaven_n he_o answer_v fear_v it_o not_o i_o will_v warrant_v you_o to_o this_o purpose_n it_o be_v once_o say_v before_o yea_o but_o have_v god_n say_v in_o the_o day_n you_o shall_v eat_v thereof_o you_o shall_v die_v i_o say_v you_o shall_v not_o die_v but_o you_o shall_v be_v like_o go_n but_o let_v we_o hear_v the_o answer_n first_o it_o be_v say_v that_o baptism_n and_o the_o spirit_n signify_v the_o same_o thing_n for_o by_o water_n be_v mean_v the_o effect_n of_o the_o spirit_n i_o reply_v that_o therefore_o they_o do_v not_o signify_v the_o same_o thing_n because_o by_o water_n be_v mean_v the_o effect_n of_o the_o spirit_n unless_o the_o effect_n and_o the_o cause_n be_v the_o same_o thing_n so_o that_o here_o be_v a_o contradiction_n in_o the_o part_n of_o the_o allegation_n but_o if_o they_o signify_v two_o thing_n as_o certain_o they_o do_v than_o they_o may_v as_o well_o signify_v the_o sign_n and_o the_o thing_n signify_v as_o the_o cause_n and_o the_o effect_n or_o they_o may_v mean_v the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o it_o be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o whole_a analogy_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o we_o be_v sure_a that_o christ_n ordain_v baptism_n and_o it_o be_v also_o certain_a that_o in_o baptism_n he_o do_v give_v the_o spirit_n and_o therefore_o to_o confound_v these_o two_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n when_o several_o they_o have_v their_o certain_a meaning_n and_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o institution_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o baptism_n make_v they_o two_o term_n of_o a_o relation_n a_o sign_n and_o a_o thing_n signify_v the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o sacrament_n for_o i_o offer_v it_o to_o the_o consideration_n of_o any_o man_n that_o believe_v christ_n to_o have_v ordain_v the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n which_o be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n that_o by_o water_n and_o the_o spirit_n shall_v be_v mean_v the_o outward_a element_n and_o inward_a grace_n or_o that_o by_o water_n and_o spirit_n shall_v be_v mean_v only_o the_o spirit_n cleanse_v we_o like_o water_n but_o suppose_v it_o do_v mean_a so_o what_o will_v be_v effect_v or_o persuade_v by_o it_o more_o than_o by_o the_o other_o if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o then_o infant_n by_o this_o place_n be_v not_o oblige_v to_o baptism_n i_o reply_v that_o yet_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o new_a birth_n nevertheless_o they_o must_v be_v bear_v again_o of_o the_o spirit_n if_o not_o of_o water_n and_o the_o spirit_n and_o if_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o be_v regenerate_v by_o the_o spirit_n why_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v baptize_v with_o water_n which_o be_v the_o symbol_n and_o sacrament_n the_o vehiculum_fw-la and_o channel_n of_o its_o ordinary_a conveyance_n i_o profess_v i_o can_v understand_v how_o to_o make_v a_o reasonable_a conjecture_n but_o it_o may_v be_v they_o mean_v that_o if_o by_o water_n and_o the_o spirit_n be_v only_o mean_v spiritus_fw-la purificans_fw-la the_o cleanse_n purify_n spirit_n than_o this_o place_n can_v concern_v infant_n at_o all_o but_o this_o loophole_n i_o have_v already_o obstruct_v by_o place_v a_o bar_n that_o can_v never_o be_v remove_v for_o it_o be_v certain_a and_o evident_a that_o regeneration_n or_o new_a birth_n be_v here_o enjoin_v to_o all_o as_o of_o absolute_a and_o indispensable_a necessity_n and_o if_o infant_n be_v not_o oblige_v to_o it_o then_o by_o their_o natural_a birth_n they_o go_v to_o heaven_n or_o not_o at_o all_o but_o if_o infant_n must_v be_v bear_v again_o then_o either_o let_v these_o adversary_n show_v any_o other_o way_n of_o new_a birth_n but_o this_o of_o water_n and_o the_o spirit_n or_o let_v they_o acknowledge_v this_o to_o belong_v to_o infant_n and_o then_o the_o former_a discourse_n return_v upon_o they_o in_o its_o full_a strength_n so_o that_o now_o i_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o consider_v their_o parallel_n instance_n of_o be_v baptize_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o with_o fire_n for_o although_o there_o be_v difference_n enough_o to_o be_v observe_v the_o one_o be_v only_o a_o prophecy_n and_o the_o other_o a_o precept_n the_o one_o concern_v some_o only_a and_o the_o other_o concern_v all_o the_o one_o be_v verify_v with_o degree_n and_o variety_n the_o other_o equal_o and_o to_o all_o yet_o this_o place_n which_o in_o the_o main_a expression_n i_o confess_v to_o have_v similitude_n be_v verify_v in_o the_o letter_n and_o first_o signification_n of_o it_o and_o so_o do_v relate_v to_o the_o miraculous_a descent_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o likeness_n of_o tongue_n of_o fire_n but_o this_o concern_v not_o all_o for_o all_o be_v not_o so_o baptize_v and_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o objection_n that_o the_o baptist_n tell_v not_o christ_n disciple_n but_o the_o jew_n and_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v intend_v to_o relate_v to_o all_o it_o be_v well_o observe_v but_o to_o no_o purpose_n for_o christ_n at_o that_o time_n have_v no_o
from_o christ_n it_o be_v a_o receive_v christ_n which_o be_v the_o duty_n here_o enjoin_v this_o be_v one_o way_n of_o do_v it_o and_o all_o the_o way_n that_o they_o be_v capable_a of_o and_o that_o this_o precept_n can_v be_v perform_v this_o way_n s._n augustine_n affirm_v express_o in_o his_o three_o book_n de_fw-fr peccatorum_fw-la meritis_fw-la &_o remissione_n 6.63_o in_o this_o thing_n there_o be_v nothing_o hard_o but_o the_o metaphor_n of_o eat_v and_o drink_v now_o that_o this_o be_v to_o be_v spiritual_o understand_v our_o bless_a lord_n himself_o affirm_v in_o answer_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o offend_a capernaite_n that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o faith_n and_o that_o faith_n be_v the_o spiritual_a manducation_n be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o therefore_o in_o what_o sense_n soever_o any_o one_o be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v in_o the_o same_o sense_n he_o be_v oblige_v to_o the_o duty_n of_o spiritual_a manducation_n and_o no_o otherwise_o but_o because_o infant_n can_v be_v oblige_v to_o the_o act_n or_o habit_n of_o faith_n and_o yet_o can_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o faith_n 3_o they_o receive_v christ_n as_o they_o can_v and_o as_o they_o can_v be_v entitle_v to_o life_n but_o however_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o difficulty_n of_o the_o expression_n be_v take_v off_o for_o if_o by_o eat_v and_o drink_v christ_n be_v mean_v receive_v christ_n by_o faith_n than_o this_o phrase_n can_v be_v no_o objection_n but_o that_o s._n augustine_n affirmative_a may_n be_v true_a and_o that_o this_o commandment_n be_v perform_v by_o infant_n in_o baptism_n which_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o faith_n to_o eat_v and_o drink_n do_v with_o as_o great_a impropriety_n signify_v faith_n as_o baptism_n but_o this_o be_v it_o which_o i_o say_v at_o first_o that_o the_o metaphorical_a expression_n be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o precept_n but_o the_o vehiculum_fw-la of_o the_o commandment_n occasion_v by_o the_o precede_a discourse_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n and_o nothing_o be_v necessary_a but_o that_o christ_n shall_v be_v receive_v by_o all_o that_o will_v have_v life_n eternal_a of_o which_o because_o infant_n be_v capable_a and_o without_o receive_v christ_n they_o by_o virtue_n of_o these_o word_n be_v not_o capable_a and_o but_o in_o baptism_n they_o can_v receive_v christ_n it_o follow_v that_o these_o word_n be_v no_o argument_n to_o infer_v a_o equal_a necessity_n of_o communicate_v infant_n but_o they_o be_v a_o good_a argument_n to_o prove_v a_o necessity_n of_o baptise_v they_o second_o but_o far_a yet_o i_o demand_v can_v infant_n receive_v christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n can_v they_o in_o that_o sacrament_n eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n if_o they_o can_v than_o neither_o these_o word_n nor_o any_o other_o can_v infer_v a_o equal_a necessity_n of_o be_v communicate_v for_o they_o can_v infer_v none_o at_o all_o and_o whether_o those_o other_o word_n of_o nisi_fw-la quis_fw-la renatus_fw-la fuerit_fw-la etc._n etc._n do_v infer_v a_o necessity_n of_o baptism_n will_v be_v sufficient_o clear_v upon_o their_o own_o account_n but_o if_o infant_n can_v receive_v christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n to_o which_o they_o can_v no_o more_o dispose_v themselves_o by_o repentance_n than_o they_o can_v to_o baptism_n by_o faith_n than_o it_o be_v indeed_o very_o well_o if_o they_o be_v communicate_v but_o yet_o not_o necessary_a because_o if_o they_o can_v receive_v christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n they_o can_v receive_v christ_n in_o baptism_n and_o if_o they_o can_v receive_v he_o any_o way_n this_o precept_n be_v perform_v by_o that_o way_n and_o then_o whether_o they_o must_v also_o be_v communicate_v must_v be_v inquire_v by_o other_o argument_n for_o whatsoever_o be_v in_o these_o word_n intend_v be_v perform_v by_o any_o way_n of_o receive_v christ_n and_o therefore_o can_v infer_v more_o in_o all_o circumstance_n and_o to_o all_o person_n three_o suppose_v these_o word_n be_v to_o be_v expound_v of_o sacramental_a manducation_n of_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o infant_n be_v as_o much_o bind_v to_o receive_v the_o communion_n as_o to_o receive_v the_o baptism_n it_o be_v too_o crude_a a_o fancy_n to_o think_v that_o all_o universal_a proposition_n whether_o affirmative_a or_o negative_a equal_o express_v do_v signify_v a_o equal_a universality_n it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n whosoever_o be_v not_o circumcise_v that_o soul_n shall_v be_v cut_v off_o from_o his_o people_n this_o indeed_o signify_v universal_o and_o include_v infant_n bind_v they_o to_o that_o sacrament_n but_o when_o it_o be_v say_v whosoever_o will_v not_o seek_v the_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n whether_o small_a or_o great_a 15.13_o although_o these_o word_n be_v express_v with_o as_o great_a a_o latitude_n as_o the_o other_o yet_o it_o be_v certain_a it_o do_v not_o include_v infant_n who_o can_v not_o seek_v the_o lord_n the_o same_o be_v the_o case_n of_o the_o two_o sacrament_n the_o obligation_n to_o which_o we_o do_v not_o understand_v only_o by_o the_o preceptive_a word_n or_o form_n of_o the_o commandment_n but_o by_o other_o appendage_n and_o the_o word_n of_o duty_n that_o be_v relative_a to_o the_o suscipient_n of_o the_o several_a sacrament_n and_o the_o analogy_n of_o the_o whole_a institution_n baptism_n be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o beginner_n the_o eucharist_n of_o proficient_o that_o be_v the_o birth_n this_o be_v the_o nourishment_n of_o a_o christian._n there_o be_v many_o more_o thing_n of_o difference_n to_o be_v observe_v but_o as_o the_o church_n in_o several_a age_n have_v practise_v several_o in_o this_o article_n so_o in_o the_o particular_a there_o be_v no_o such_o certainty_n but_o that_o the_o church_n may_v without_o sin_n do_v it_o or_o not_o do_v it_o as_o she_o see_v cause_n but_o that_o there_o be_v not_o the_o same_o necessity_n in_o both_o to_o all_o person_n and_o that_o no_o necessity_n of_o communicate_v infant_n can_v be_v infer_v from_o the_o parallel_a word_n appear_v in_o the_o former_a answer_n and_o therefore_o i_o stand_v to_o they_o ad_fw-la 9_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o six_o argument_n be_v this_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v make_v to_o all_o to_o we_o and_o to_o our_o child_n and_o if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n belong_v to_o they_o than_o baptism_n belong_v to_o they_o also_o because_o baptism_n be_v the_o mean_n of_o convey_v the_o holy_a ghost_n 39_o as_o appear_v in_o the_o word_n of_o s._n peter_n be_v baptize_v and_o you_o shall_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o also_o because_o from_o this_o very_a argument_n s._n peter_n resolve_v to_o baptize_v cornelius_n and_o his_o family_n because_o they_o have_v receive_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o they_o that_o be_v capable_a of_o the_o same_o grace_n be_v receptive_a of_o the_o same_o sign_n now_o that_o infant_n also_o can_v receive_v the_o effect_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v evident_a because_o beside_o that_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v make_v to_o all_o to_o we_o and_o our_o posterity_n s._n paul_n affirm_v that_o the_o child_n of_o believe_a parent_n be_v holy_a but_o all_o holiness_n be_v a_o emanation_n from_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n ad_fw-la 19_o to_o the_o word_n of_o s._n peter_n they_o answer_v that_o the_o promise_n do_v appertain_v to_o our_o child_n that_o be_v to_o our_o posterity_n but_o not_o till_o they_o be_v capable_a they_o have_v the_o same_o right_n which_o we_o have_v but_o enter_v not_o into_o possession_n of_o their_o right_n till_o they_o have_v the_o same_o capacity_n for_o by_o child_n be_v not_o mean_v infant_n but_o as_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n signify_v the_o descendants_n only_o so_o it_o be_v here_o and_o indeed_o this_o be_v true_a enough_o but_o not_o pertinent_a enough_o to_o answer_v the_o intention_n and_o efficiency_n of_o these_o word_n for_o i_o do_v not_o suppose_v that_o the_o word_n child_n mean_n infant_n but_o you_o and_o your_o child_n must_v mean_v all_o generation_n of_o christendom_n all_o the_o descendants_n of_o christian_a parent_n and_o if_o they_o belong_v to_o their_o posterity_n because_o they_o be_v they_o than_o the_o promise_v belong_v to_o all_o that_o be_v so_o and_o then_o child_n can_v be_v exclude_v but_o i_o demand_v have_v not_o the_o child_n of_o believe_a parent_n a_o title_n to_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n if_o they_o have_v none_o than_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n belong_v not_o to_o such_o and_o if_o they_o die_v we_o can_v do_v nothing_o but_o despair_n of_o their_o salvation_n which_o be_v a_o proposition_n who_o barbarity_n and_o unreasonable_a cruelty_n confute_v itself_o but_o if_o they_o
proper_a instrument_n but_o as_o a_o consequent_a be_v to_o a_o antecedent_n in_o a_o chain_n of_o cause_n accidental_o and_o by_o positive_a institution_n depend_v upon_o each_o other_o who_o can_v help_v it_o if_o man_n will_v say_v that_o it_o happen_v that_o they_o recover_v after_o the_o take_a physic_n but_o then_o be_v the_o time_n in_o which_o they_o shall_v have_v be_v well_o however_o the_o best_a confutation_n of_o they_o be_v to_o deny_v physic_n to_o they_o when_o they_o need_v and_o try_v what_o nature_n will_v do_v for_o they_o without_o the_o help_n of_o art_n the_o case_n be_v all_o one_o in_o this_o question_n this_o only_o except_v that_o in_o this_o case_n it_o be_v more_o unreasonable_a then_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o physic_n 12.13_o because_o the_o spirit_n be_v express_o signify_v to_o be_v the_o baptizer_n in_o the_o forecited_a place_n of_o saint_n paul_n from_o hence_o we_o argue_v that_o since_o the_o spirit_n be_v minister_v in_o baptism_n and_o that_o infant_n be_v capable_a of_o the_o spirit_n the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n the_o spirit_n of_o incorporation_n into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o spirit_n seal_v they_o to_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n the_o spirit_n intitle_v they_o to_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o spirit_n consign_v to_o they_o god_n part_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n they_o be_v also_o capable_a of_o baptism_n for_o whoever_o be_v capable_a of_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v capable_a of_o the_o sign_n or_o sacrament_n itself_o to_o this_o last_o clause_n the_o anab._n answer_v two_o thing_n first_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v convey_v sometime_o without_o baptism_n i_o grant_v it_o but_o what_o then_o therefore_o baptism_n be_v not_o the_o sign_n or_o ministry_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o follow_v not_o for_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o great_a wealth_n and_o treasure_n of_o christian_n and_o be_v convey_v in_o every_o ministry_n of_o divine_a appointment_n in_o baptism_n in_o confirmation_n in_o absolution_n in_o order_n in_o prayer_n in_o benediction_n in_o assemble_v together_o second_o the_o other_o thing_n they_o answer_v be_v this_o that_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o they_o who_o be_v capable_a of_o the_o same_o grace_n be_v capable_a of_o the_o same_o sign_n for_o female_n be_v capable_a of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n but_o not_o of_o the_o seal_n of_o circumcision_n i_o reply_v that_o the_o proposition_n be_v true_a not_o in_o natural_a capacity_n but_o in_o spiritual_a and_o religious_a regard_n that_o be_v they_o who_o in_o religion_n be_v declare_v capable_a of_o the_o grace_n be_v by_o the_o same_o religion_n capable_a of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o sign_n of_o that_o grace_n but_o natural_o they_o may_v be_v uncapable_a by_o accident_n as_o in_o the_o objection_n be_v mention_v but_o then_o this_o be_v so_o far_o from_o invalidate_v the_o argument_n that_o it_o confirm_v it_o in_o the_o present_a instance_n exceptio_fw-la firmat_n regulam_fw-la in_o non_fw-la exceptis_fw-la for_o even_o the_o jewish_a female_n although_o they_o can_v not_o be_v circumcise_v yet_o they_o be_v baptize_v even_o in_o those_o day_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v already_o 10._o and_o although_o their_o natural_a indisposition_n deny_v they_o to_o be_v circumcise_v yet_o neither_o nature_n nor_o religion_n forbid_v they_o to_o be_v baptize_v and_o therefore_o since_o the_o sacrament_n be_v such_o a_o ministry_n of_o which_o all_o be_v natural_o capable_a and_o none_o be_v forbid_v by_o the_o religion_n the_o argument_n be_v firm_a and_o unshaken_a and_o conclude_v with_o as_o much_o evidence_n and_o certainty_n as_o the_o thing_n require_v ad_fw-la 10._o the_o last_o argument_n from_o reason_n be_v that_o it_o be_v reasonable_a to_o suppose_v that_o god_n in_o the_o period_n of_o grace_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o gospel_n will_v not_o give_v we_o a_o more_o contract_a comfort_n and_o deal_v with_o we_o by_o a_o narrow_a hand_n than_o with_o the_o jewish_a babe_n who_o he_o seal_v with_o a_o sacrament_n as_o well_o as_o enrich_v with_o a_o grace_n and_o therefore_o open_o consign_v they_o to_o comfort_n and_o favour_n ad_fw-la 22._o to_o this_o they_o answer_v that_o we_o be_v to_o trust_v the_o word_n without_o a_o sign_n and_o since_o we_o contend_v that_o the_o promise_n belong_v to_o we_o and_o to_o our_o child_n why_o do_v we_o not_o believe_v this_o but_o require_v a_o sign_n i_o reply_v that_o if_o this_o conclude_v any_o thing_n it_o conclude_v against_o the_o baptism_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n for_o they_o hear_v and_o read_v and_o can_v believe_v the_o promise_n and_o it_o can_v have_v all_o its_o effect_n and_o produce_v all_o its_o intention_n upon_o man_n but_o yet_o they_o also_o require_v the_o sign_n they_o must_v be_v baptize_v and_o the_o reason_n why_o they_o require_v it_o be_v because_o christ_n have_v ordain_v it_o and_o therefore_o although_o we_o can_v trust_v the_o promise_n without_o a_o sign_n and_o that_o if_o we_o do_v not_o this_o manner_n of_o sign_n will_v not_o make_v we_o believe_v it_o for_o it_o be_v not_o a_o miracle_n that_o be_v a_o sign_n prove_v but_o it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n that_o be_v a_o sign_n signify_v and_o although_o we_o do_v trust_v the_o promise_n even_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o infant_n when_o they_o can_v be_v baptize_v yet_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n as_o we_o trust_v the_o promise_n so_o we_o also_o use_v the_o rite_n both_o in_o obedience_n to_o christ_n and_o we_o use_v the_o rite_n or_o the_o sacrament_n because_o we_o believe_v the_o promise_n and_o if_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o the_o promise_n do_v belong_v to_o our_o child_n we_o will_v not_o baptize_v they_o therefore_o this_o be_v such_o a_o impertinent_a quarrel_n of_o the_o anabaptist_n that_o it_o have_v no_o strength_n at_o all_o but_o what_o it_o borrow_v from_o a_o cloud_n of_o word_n and_o the_o advantage_n of_o its_o representment_n as_o god_n do_v open_o consign_v his_o grace_n to_o the_o jewish_a babe_n by_o a_o sacrament_n so_o he_o do_v to_o we_o and_o we_o have_v reason_n to_o give_v god_n thanks_o not_o only_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o it_o for_o that_o be_v the_o least_o part_n of_o it_o but_o for_o the_o ministry_n and_o conveyance_n of_o the_o real_a blessing_n in_o this_o holy_a mystery_n ad_fw-la 23_o 24_o 25._o that_o which_o remain_v of_o objection_n and_o answer_n be_v whole_o upon_o the_o matter_n of_o example_n and_o precedent_n from_o the_o apostle_n and_o first_o descend_v age_n of_o the_o church_n but_o to_o this_o i_o have_v already_o large_o speak_v in_o a_o discourse_n of_o this_o question_n etc._n and_o if_o the_o anabaptist_n will_v be_v conclude_v by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n in_o this_o question_n it_o will_v quick_o be_v at_o a_o end_n for_o although_o sometime_o the_o baptism_n of_o child_n be_v defer_v till_o the_o age_n of_o reason_n and_o choice_n yet_o it_o be_v only_a when_o there_o be_v no_o danger_n of_o the_o death_n of_o the_o child_n and_o although_o there_o may_v be_v some_o advantage_n get_v by_o such_o delation_n yet_o it_o can_v not_o be_v endure_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v send_v out_o of_o the_o world_n without_o it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n it_o be_v better_a they_o shall_v be_v sanctify_v even_o when_o they_o understand_v it_o not_o then_o that_o they_o shall_v go_v away_o from_o hence_o without_o the_o seal_n of_o perfection_n and_o sanctification_n second_o but_o that_o baptism_n be_v among_o the_o ancient_n sometime_o defer_v be_v not_o always_o upon_o a_o good_a reason_n but_o sometime_o upon_o the_o same_o account_n as_o man_n now_o adays_o defer_v repentance_n or_o put_v off_o confession_n and_o absolution_n and_o the_o communion_n till_o the_o last_o day_n of_o their_o life_n that_o their_o baptism_n may_v take_v away_o all_o the_o sin_n of_o their_o life_n three_o it_o be_v no_o strange_a thing_n that_o there_o be_v example_n of_o late_a baptism_n because_o heathenism_n and_o christianity_n be_v so_o mingle_v in_o town_n and_o city_n and_o private_a house_n that_o it_o be_v but_o reasonable_a sometime_o to_o stay_v till_o man_n do_v choose_v their_o religion_n from_o which_o it_o be_v so_o likely_a they_o may_v afterward_o be_v tempt_v four_o the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n be_v always_o most_o notorious_a and_o use_v in_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n as_o be_v confess_v by_o all_o that_o know_v the_o ecclesiastical_a story_n five_o among_o the_o jew_n it_o be_v one_o and_o all_o if_o the_o major_a domo_fw-la believe_v he_o believe_v for_o himself_o &_o all_o his_o family_n and_o they_o all_o follow_v he_o to_o baptism_n even_o before_o they_o be_v instruct_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o we_o find_v mention_n of_o
the_o lord_n take_v they_o up_o and_o so_o it_o be_v in_o this_o particular_a what_o be_v want_v to_o they_o by_o the_o neglect_n of_o other_o god_n will_v supply_v by_o his_o own_o grace_n and_o immediate_a dispensation_n but_o if_o baptism_n be_v make_v necessary_a to_o all_o than_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v procure_v for_o those_o who_o can_v procure_v it_o for_o themselves_o just_o as_o meat_n and_o drink_n and_o physic_n and_o education_n and_o it_o be_v in_o this_o as_o it_o be_v in_o blessing_n little_a babe_n can_v ask_v it_o but_o their_o need_n require_v it_o and_o therefore_o as_o by_o their_o friend_n they_o be_v bring_v to_o christ_n to_o have_v it_o so_o they_o must_v without_o their_o ask_n minister_v it_o to_o they_o who_o yet_o be_v bind_v to_o seek_v it_o as_o soon_o as_o they_o can_v the_o precept_n bind_v they_o both_o in_o their_o several_a period_n ad_fw-la 31._o but_o their_o next_o great_a strength_n consist_v in_o this_o dilemma_n if_o baptism_n do_v no_o good_a there_o need_v no_o contention_n about_o it_o if_o it_o do_v then_o either_o by_o the_o opus_fw-la operatum_fw-la of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o by_o the_o disposition_n of_o the_o suscipient_fw-la if_o the_o former_a that_o be_v worse_a than_o popery_n if_o the_o latter_a than_o infant_n can_v receive_v it_o because_o they_o can_v dispose_v themselves_o to_o its_o reception_n i_o answer_v that_o it_o work_v its_o effect_n neither_o by_o the_o ceremony_n alone_o nor_o yet_o by_o that_o and_o the_o disposition_n together_o but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n work_v as_o he_o please_v second_v his_o own_o ordinance_n and_o yet_o infant_n be_v right_o dispose_v for_o the_o receive_v the_o blessing_n and_o effect_n of_o baptism_n for_o the_o understanding_n of_o which_o we_o be_v to_o observe_v that_o god_n grace_n be_v so_o free_a that_o they_o be_v give_v to_o we_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o his_o own_o goodness_n only_o and_o for_o the_o reception_n of_o they_o we_o be_v tie_v to_o no_o other_o predisposition_n but_o that_o we_o do_v not_o hinder_v they_o for_o what_o worthiness_n can_v there_o be_v in_o any_o man_n to_o receive_v the_o first_o grace_n before_o grace_n there_o can_v be_v nothing_o good_a in_o we_o and_o therefore_o before_o the_o first_o grace_n there_o be_v nothing_o that_o can_v deserve_v it_o because_o before_o the_o first_o grace_n there_o be_v no_o grace_n and_o consequent_o no_o worthiness_n but_o the_o disposition_n which_o be_v require_v in_o man_n of_o reason_n be_v nothing_o but_o to_o remove_v the_o hindrance_n of_o god_n grace_n to_o take_v off_o the_o contrariety_n to_o the_o good_a spirit_n of_o god_n now_o because_o in_o infant_n there_o be_v nothing_o that_o can_v resist_v god_n spirit_n nothing_o that_o can_v hinder_v he_o nothing_o that_o can_v grieve_v he_o they_o have_v that_o simplicity_n and_o nakedness_n that_o passivity_n and_o negative_a disposition_n or_o non-hinderance_n to_o which_o all_o that_o man_n can_v do_v in_o dispose_v themselves_o be_v but_o approach_v and_o similitude_n and_o therefore_o infant_n can_v receive_v all_o that_o they_o need_v all_o that_o can_v do_v they_o benefit_n and_o although_o there_o be_v some_o effect_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n which_o require_v natural_a capacity_n to_o be_v their_o foundation_n yet_o those_o be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o power_n of_o work_v but_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o inheritance_n and_o the_o title_n to_o the_o promise_n require_v nothing_o on_o our_o part_n but_o that_o we_o can_v receive_v they_o that_o we_o put_v no_o hindrance_n to_o they_o for_o that_o be_v the_o direct_a meaning_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n he_o that_o do_v not_o receive_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n as_o a_o little_a child_n shall_v in_o no_o wise_n enter_v therein_o that_o be_v without_o that_o nakedness_n and_o freedom_n from_o obstruction_n and_o impediment_n none_o shall_v enter_v upon_o the_o account_n of_o this_o truth_n all_o that_o long_a harangue_n that_o pursue_v this_o dilemma_n in_o other_o word_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n will_v quick_o come_v to_o nothing_o for_o baptism_n be_v not_o a_o mere_a ceremony_n but_o assist_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n the_o communication_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o yet_o it_o require_v a_o duty_n on_o our_o part_n when_o we_o be_v capable_a of_o duty_n and_o need_v it_o but_o be_v enable_v to_o produce_v its_o effect_n without_o any_o positive_a disposition_n even_o by_o the_o negative_a of_o child_n by_o their_o not_o put_v a_o bar_n to_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n that_o god_n may_v be_v glorify_v and_o may_v be_v all_o in_o all_o two_o particular_n more_o be_v considerable_a in_o their_o argument_n the_o first_o be_v a_o syllogism_n make_v up_o out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n all_o that_o be_v baptize_v into_o christ_n have_v put_v on_o christ._n the_o minor_a proposition_n be_v 3.27_o with_o a_o little_a strain_v some_o other_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n thus_o but_o they_o that_o put_v on_o christ_n or_o the_o new_a man_n must_v be_v form_v in_o righteousness_n and_o holiness_n of_o truth_n for_o so_o the_o apostle_n put_v you_o on_o the_o new_a man_n 4.24_o which_o after_o god_n be_v create_v in_o righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n but_o infant_n can_v put_v on_o christ_n to_o any_o such_o purpose_n and_o therefore_o can_v be_v baptize_v into_o christ._n i_o answer_v that_o to_o put_v on_o christ_n be_v to_o become_v like_a unto_o he_o and_o we_o put_v he_o on_o in_o all_o way_n by_o which_o we_o resemble_v he_o the_o little_a babe_n of_o bethlehem_n be_v like_a unto_o christ_n when_o it_o be_v give_v to_o they_o to_o die_v for_o he_o who_o die_v for_o they_o and_o we_o we_o be_v like_a unto_o he_o when_o we_o have_v put_v on_o his_o robe_n of_o righteousness_n when_o we_o be_v invest_v with_o the_o wedding_n garment_n when_o we_o submit_v to_o his_o will_n and_o to_o his_o doctrine_n when_o we_o be_v adopt_v to_o his_o inheritance_n when_o we_o be_v innocent_a and_o when_o we_o be_v wash_v and_o when_o we_o be_v bury_v with_o he_o in_o baptism_n the_o expression_n be_v a_o metaphor_n and_o can_v be_v confine_v to_o one_o particular_a signification_n but_o if_o it_o can_v yet_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o say_v that_o all_o who_o in_o any_o sense_n put_v on_o the_o new_a man_n be_v actual_o holy_a and_o righteous_a neither_o do_v he_o say_v that_o by_o the_o new_a man_n be_v mean_v christ_n for_o that_o also_o be_v another_o metaphor_n and_o it_o mean_v a_o new_a manner_n of_o live_v when_o christ_n be_v oppose_v to_o adam_n christ_n be_v call_v the_o new_a man_n but_o when_o the_o new_a man_n be_v oppose_v to_o the_o old_a conversation_n then_o by_o the_o new_a man_n christ_n be_v not_o mean_v and_o so_o it_o be_v in_o this_o place_n it_o signify_v to_o become_v a_o new_a man_n and_o it_o be_v a_o exhortation_n to_o those_o who_o have_v live_v wicked_o now_o to_o live_v holy_o and_o according_a to_o the_o intention_n of_o christianity_n but_o to_o take_v two_o metaphor_n from_o two_o several_a book_n and_o to_o concentre_v they_o into_o one_o signification_n and_o to_o make_v they_o up_o into_o one_o syllogism_n be_v fallacia_fw-la quatuor_fw-la terminorum_fw-la they_o prove_v nothing_o but_o the_o craft_n of_o the_o man_n or_o the_o weakness_n of_o the_o cause_n for_o the_o word_n to_o the_o ephesian_n be_v speak_v to_o they_o who_o already_o have_v be_v baptize_v who_o have_v before_o that_o in_o some_o sense_n put_v on_o christ_n but_o yet_o he_o call_v upon_o they_o to_o put_v on_o the_o new_a man_n therefore_o this_o be_v something_o else_o and_o it_o mean_n that_o they_o shall_v verify_v what_o they_o have_v undertake_v in_o baptism_n which_o also_o can_v concern_v child_n but_o be_v seasonable_a to_o urge_v it_o to_o they_o as_o s._n paul_n do_v to_o the_o ephesian_n after_o their_o baptism_n but_o yet_o after_o all_o let_v the_o argument_n press_v as_o far_o as_o it_o be_v intend_v yet_o infant_n even_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v put_v on_o the_o new_a man_n which_o after_o god_n be_v create_v in_o righteousness_n for_o so_o be_v they_o they_o be_v a_o new_a creation_n they_o be_v bear_v again_o they_o be_v efform_v after_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o designation_n and_o adoption_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n but_o as_o they_o can_v do_v act_n of_o reason_n and_o yet_o be_v create_v in_o a_o reasonable_a nature_n so_o they_o be_v anew_o create_v in_o righteousness_n even_o before_o they_o can_v do_v act_n spiritual_a that_o be_v they_o be_v designati_fw-la sanctitatis_fw-la as_o tertullian_n expression_n be_v they_o be_v in_o the_o second_o birth_n as_o in_o the_o first_o instruct_v
earnest_a desire_n to_o serve_v god_n if_o he_o have_v not_o then_o in_o vain_a have_v he_o receive_v either_o baptism_n or_o confirmation_n but_o if_o he_o have_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o of_o himself_o he_o can_v do_v these_o thing_n he_o can_v of_o himself_o think_v a_o good_a thought_n do_v he_o therefore_o think_v well_o that_o be_v from_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n to_o conclude_v this_o inquiry_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v promise_v to_o all_o man_n to_o profit_n withal_o that_o be_v plain_a in_o scripture_n 12.7_o confirmation_n or_o prayer_n and_o imposition_n of_o the_o bishop_n hand_n be_v the_o solemnity_n and_o rite_n use_v in_o scripture_n for_o the_o convey_n of_o that_o promise_n and_o the_o effect_n be_v feel_v in_o all_o the_o sanctification_n and_o change_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o he_o that_o deny_v these_o thing_n have_v not_o faith_n nor_o the_o true_a notice_n of_o religion_n or_o the_o spirit_n of_o christianity_n hear_v what_o the_o scripture_n yet_o further_o say_v in_o this_o mystery_n 22._o now_o he_o which_o confirm_v or_o stablish_v we_o with_o you_o in_o christ_n and_o have_v anoint_v we_o be_v god_n who_o have_v also_o seal_v we_o and_o give_v the_o earnest_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o our_o heart_n here_o be_v a_o description_n of_o the_o whole_a mysterious_a part_n of_o this_o rite_n god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o grace_n the_o apostle_n and_o all_o christian_n be_v the_o suscipient_n and_o receive_v this_o grace_n by_o this_o grace_n we_o be_v adopt_v and_o incorporate_v into_o christ_n god_n have_v anoint_v we_o that_o be_v he_o have_v give_v we_o this_o unction_n from_o above_o he_o have_v seal_v we_o by_o his_o spirit_n make_v we_o his_o own_o bore_v our_o ear_n through_o make_v we_o free_a by_o his_o perpetual_a service_n and_o have_v do_v all_o these_o thing_n in_o token_n of_o a_o great_a he_o have_v give_v we_o his_o spirit_n to_o testify_v to_o we_o that_o he_o will_v give_v we_o of_o his_o glory_n these_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n beside_o that_o they_o evident_o contain_v in_o they_o the_o spiritual_a part_n of_o this_o ritual_a be_v also_o expound_v of_o the_o rite_n and_o sacramental_a if_o self_n by_o s._n chrysostom_n theodoret_n and_o theophylact_fw-mi that_o i_o may_v name_v no_o more_o for_o in_o this_o mystery_n christos_fw-la nos_fw-la efficit_fw-la &_o misericordiam_fw-la dei_fw-la nobis_fw-la annunciat_fw-la per_fw-la spiritum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la say_fw-la s._n john_n damascen_n 10._o he_o make_v we_o his_o anoint_a one_o and_o by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n he_o declare_v his_o eternal_a mercy_n towards_o we_o nolite_fw-la tangere_fw-la christos_fw-la meos_fw-la touch_v not_o my_o anoint_a one_o for_o when_o we_o have_v this_o signature_n of_o the_o lord_n upon_o we_o the_o devil_n can_v come_v near_o to_o hurt_v we_o unless_o we_o consent_v to_o their_o temptation_n and_o drive_v the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n from_o we_o sect_n vii_o of_o preparation_n to_o confirmation_n and_o the_o circumstance_n of_o receive_v it_o if_o confirmation_n have_v such_o gracious_a effect_n why_o do_v we_o confirm_v little_a child_n who_o in_o all_o reason_n we_o can_v suppose_v to_o be_v capable_a and_o receptive_a of_o such_o grace_n it_o will_v be_v no_o answer_n to_o this_o if_o we_o say_v that_o this_o very_a question_n be_v ask_v concern_v the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n to_o which_o as_o great_a effect_n be_v consequent_a even_o pardon_v of_o all_o our_o sin_n and_o the_o new_a birth_n and_o regeneration_n of_o the_o soul_n unto_o christ_n for_o in_o these_o thing_n the_o soul_n be_v whole_o passive_a and_o nothing_o be_v require_v of_o the_o suscipient_fw-la but_o that_o he_o put_v in_o no_o bar_n against_o the_o grace_n which_o because_o infant_n can_v do_v they_o be_v capable_a of_o baptism_n but_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o therefore_o they_o be_v capable_a of_o confirmation_n because_o this_o do_v suppose_v they_o such_o as_o to_o need_v new_a assistance_n and_o be_v a_o new_a profession_n and_o a_o personal_a undertake_n and_o therefore_o require_v personal_a ability_n and_o can_v be_v do_v by_o other_o as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o baptism_n the_o aid_n give_v in_o confirmation_n be_v in_o order_n to_o our_o contention_n and_o our_o danger_n our_o temptation_n and_o spiritual_a warfare_n and_o therefore_o it_o will_v not_o seem_v equal_o reasonable_a to_o confirm_v child_n as_o too_o baptise_v they_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n confirmation_n be_v usual_o administer_v at_o the_o same_o time_n with_o baptism_n for_o we_o find_v many_o record_n that_o when_o the_o office_n of_o baptism_n be_v finish_v and_o the_o baptize_v person_n devest_v of_o the_o white_a robe_n the_o person_n be_v carry_v again_o to_o the_o bishop_n to_o be_v confirm_v as_o i_o have_v already_o show_v out_o of_o 19_o dionysius_n and_o divers_a other_o the_o reason_n why_o ancient_o they_o be_v minister_v immediate_o after_o one_o another_o be_v not_o only_o because_o the_o most_o of_o they_o that_o be_v baptise_a be_v of_o year_n to_o choose_v their_o religion_n and_o do_v so_o and_o therefore_o be_v capable_a of_o all_o that_o can_v be_v consequent_a to_o baptism_n or_o annex_v to_o it_o or_o minister_v with_o it_o and_o therefore_o be_v also_o at_o the_o same_o time_n communicate_v as_o well_o as_o confirm_v but_o also_o because_o the_o solemn_a baptism_n be_v at_o solemn_a time_n of_o the_o year_n at_o fast_a only_o and_o whitsuntide_n and_o only_o in_o the_o cathedral_n or_o bishop_n church_n in_o the_o chief_a city_n whither_o when_o the_o catechuman_n come_v and_o have_v the_o opportunity_n of_o the_o bishop_n presence_n they_o take_v the_o advantage_n ut_fw-mi sacramento_n utroque_fw-la renascantur_fw-la as_o s._n cyprian_n expression_n be_v that_o they_o may_v be_v regenerate_v by_o both_o the_o mystery_n and_o they_o also_o have_v the_o three_o add_v viz._n the_o holy_a eucharist_n this_o simultaneous_a ministration_n have_v occasion_v some_o few_o of_o late_a to_o mistake_v confirmation_n for_o a_o part_n of_o baptism_n but_o no_o distinct_a rite_n or_o of_o distinct_a effect_n save_v only_o that_o it_o give_v ornament_n and_o compliment_n or_o perfection_n to_o the_o other_o but_o this_o be_v infinite_o confute_v by_o the_o very_a first_o ministry_n of_o confirmation_n in_o the_o world_n for_o there_o be_v a_o great_a interval_n between_o s._n philip_n baptise_v and_o the_o apostle_n confirm_v the_o samaritan_n where_o also_o the_o difference_n be_v make_v wide_o by_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o minister_n a_o deacon_n do_v one_o none_o but_o a_o apostle_n and_o his_o successor_n a_o bishop_n can_v do_v the_o other_o and_o this_o be_v of_o so_o universal_a a_o practice_n and_o doctrine_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n it_o be_v a_o great_a wonder_n that_o any_o learned_a man_n can_v suffer_v a_o error_n in_o so_o apparent_a a_o case_n it_o be_v also_o clear_a in_o two_o other_o great_a remark_n of_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o one_o be_v of_o they_o who_o be_v baptise_a in_o their_o sickness_n the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d when_o they_o recover_v they_o be_v command_v to_o address_v themselves_o to_o the_o bishop_n to_o be_v confirm_v which_o appear_v in_o the_o xxxviii_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o eliberis_n and_o the_o xlvi_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n which_o i_o have_v before_o cite_v upon_o other_o occasion_n the_o other_o be_v that_o of_o heretic_n return_v to_o the_o church_n who_o be_v confirm_v not_o only_o long_a after_o baptism_n but_o after_o their_o apostasy_n and_o their_o conversion_n for_o although_o episcopal_a confirmation_n be_v the_o enlargement_n of_o baptismal_a grace_n and_o common_o administer_v the_o same_o day_n yet_o it_o be_v do_v by_o interposition_n of_o distinct_a ceremony_n and_o not_o immediate_o in_o time_n honorius_n augustodunensis_n tell_v 〈◊〉_d that_o when_o the_o baptise_a on_o the_o eight_o day_n have_v lay_v aside_o their_o mitre_n or_o proper_a habit_n use_v in_o baptism_n than_o they_o be_v usual_o confirm_v or_o consign_v with_o chrism_n in_o the_o forehead_n by_o the_o bishop_n and_o when_o child_n be_v baptise_a irregular_o or_o beside_o the_o ordinary_a way_n in_o village_n and_o place_n distant_a from_o the_o bishop_n confirmation_n be_v defer_v say_v durandus_fw-la and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o this_o affair_n do_v not_o last_v long_o without_o variety_n sometime_o they_o minister_v both_o together_o sometime_o at_o great_a sometime_o at_o lesser_a distance_n and_o it_o be_v leave_v indifferent_a in_o the_o church_n to_o do_v the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o or_o the_o three_o according_a to_o the_o opportunity_n and_o the_o discretion_n of_o the_o bishop_n but_o afterward_o in_o the_o middle_n and_o descend_a age_n it_o grow_v to_o be_v a_o question_n not_o whether_o it_o be_v